Cheiros Language of the Hand 1000600095 (1)
April 2, 2017 | Author: Aashishh Patil | Category: N/A
Short Description
Download Cheiros Language of the Hand 1000600095 (1)...
Description
"i 'as
is tbe
minD,
(s tbe
so
torm"
CHEIRO'S OF
LANGUAGE
THE ;,
A
COMPLETE AND
ON
WORK
PRACTICAL
SCIENCES
THE
CONTAINING
CHEIROMANCY. AND
HAND
THE
EXPERIENCE
OF
CHEIROGNOMY RULES.
SYSTEM,
OF
^^?^f
CHEIRO and niustrations, Hfty-Jive Full-page
over
Two Hundred
of Lines, Engravings
Mounts, and Marks
DRAWINGS
THE
OF
REPRODUCTIONS
OF
FAMOUS TAKEN
SEVEN
HANDS,
ALSO
THEO
BY
TYPES
NORMAL
AND
DORE
ABNORMAL
HANDS
LIFE. INCLUDING
FROM
^
Mark Sarah Bernhardt. Nordica. Col. R. G. Ingersoll Twain. Madame Leslie,Mr. W. T. Stead, The Right Honorable Joseph Chamberlain.
The hands of Madame Mrs, Frank
M.P.!
Chamberlain,Esq..M.P., Mrs. Annie Besant. Sir Frederick Leighton,P.R.A John Lubbock.M.P.. F.R.S.. The Countess of Aberdeen. Sir Edwin Arnold,The Lord Chief Justice of England.The Swami Vivekananda, Rev. C. H. Parkhurst,D.D.. Lady of the House Lindsay.Sir Arthur Sullivan,Lady Henry Somerset. A Prominent Member of Commons, Madame Melba. Lord Charles Beresford. Mr. William Whiteley,Gen. Austen
Sir
Sir Redvers Buller, V.C. K.CB.,
Rev.
Minot
the Wonderful
ContainingIllustrationsof "THOUGHT
PHOTOGRAPHY
Apparatus
AND
V I
Esq.' Higinbotham'
ScientificInvention
for
REGISTER
PUBLISHERS Oxfnr^rc:r''.^T^"'^ i. 3 Oxford Street.Lc.idon,W. w
H. N.
EDITION
FIFTEENTH the
j.Savage,and
:
OF
CEREBRAL
FORCE"
^^^^^ McNallv Chicago and
"
Co., New
York.
Revised
and
1897,
Copyright, By
Leich
de
LIBRARY
THE ''
aV*
BRIGHAfvi
"
'
:.'G
UraiVERSlTY
_
PROVO, 1
UTAH
Hamong.
1900,
Copyright,
Rand,
By
Edition,
Enlarged
McJNally
"
Co.
DEDICATION.
What
.
.
do
I
?
bring
.
Kind
Life,
'tis
but
little
thing,
a
A
flower
I
in
loved
youth ;
A
flower
wayside
the
thrown.
upon
Yet
the
of
lips
truth
have
known,
one
And
is
itself
truth. a
.
.
.
Cheiro.
PEEFACE.
is to
believe
To
constitutes
either
perceive classes
two
the
thought
such
distinct
which
become
of
will the
of
In
collect forward all that
life's
the
the to
has
its
which,
though
but
;
both
into
endless
yc
being
existence
chain
fact
that
from
characteristics
by
facts,
that,
demonstrate the
system
affects
the
classed
be
can
of
are
the
and
in
considered
be
by of
many
trivialities, nothing
ability suit-
dealing and
peraments. tem-
endeavored
have
out
that
theory,
heads
surroundings,
servants
more
produces
various
the
have
assured
palmistic
the
structure"
following
any
whole
the
to
that
scientific, which
In
for
not
acceptance
resting
I
derived
mankind,
people
under
Cheiromancy
them.
such
from
of
hands
study them
of
occupations,
and
write,
considered
to
medical as
equal
examined
specialization
Defense
is
themselves,
for
"
atom
common
both
vould
whether
study
accompanying
affects
I
power.
hand.
this
once
ask
may
control
the
conscious be
universal
remind
would
though
known,
"
of
atom
"
"progressive
which
many
the
to
and
study
deeply
that
good
nature
I
though
ultimate
the
if, therefore,
;
this
the
endeavored
this
by
truth,
public, of
in
attention,
infinite
prove
shape,
those
their
the
constitute
existence
investigate
they
study
with
tion distinc-
forced
are
make
therefore
immensity
world
the
have
which
its
for
truths
that
from
other
they
which
conscious
exemplified
of
sources
than
thought,
all, believing
concealed
trivial
too
believer,
to, each
before
also I
for laws
is
work
am
study. but
importance
greatest
or
I
peculiarly
trifle
some
of
cross-links
following
natural
are
A
the
a
class,
those
the
and
responsibility,
through
of
the
placing
my
the
This
soul.
truth.
to
In
balance
the
or
and
incomprehensible
the
links
the
become
and
of
establish
to
necessary
be
yet
may
on,
senses
skeptic
"
dependent
the
by
"
be
can
of the
the ideas
to
brought
system, of
many
so
Preface.
vi
famous
men
led
will be to
time
body
that
the
of
shaping
In
whose order
hands the
object
lives to
of
and show
first
place, their
as
test
a
; and
in
such
ters mat-
alone
of
philosophers
the
subject worthy
owners
in
be
a
study
those
the
the
than
not
investigations
hand
that
laws
the
the
the
lines
student
will
the
derive
formations
and
in
be
of such
make
to
that
the of
a
also
between
the with
keeping
hands"
greater benefit each
so
with
and
readings
exhibit
done
of those
exists
not
delineation
a
I have
hands
that
It would
in
effect
part acquainted,
most
known
well
too
the
of
effect.
people,
difference
the
give
to
were
hereafter
study
to
temperaments.
if I
a
of famous
is for
from
dictates
observe
we
the
feeling
the
to
contrary
of
student
hand
that, viewing palmistry
cause
glance
a
second, the
who
their the
entire
scientists
and
with
without
seen
hands
the
he
at
are
the
far
natural
the
enabling
reader
book
think
those
brain
the so
go
that
the
over
objects, which, by demonstrating
of different
himself
for
out
the
of this
purpose
with
characteristics
people
I
weak-minded,"
its influence
find
to
thus
it becomes
this work
of
both
now
cannot
It will
and
between
nerves
the brain
with
brain
surprising
in themselves
are
presenting
of the
system
inanimate
cause,
the
with
the
thought.
even
heretofore
the
considered
and
confined "
to call
among
brain statement
been
not
pleased
have
present,
not
in accordance
but
reason,
in
of
standpoint alone,
this
learning, both
more
are
portion
of
influence
there
decide
to
even
has
of
action
mysterious
other
any
been
whatever
attention.
that
proved
hand
often
the
for
the
greatest skeptic
so
men
of
the
even
way
between
authority
my
study of the
has
he
considered, it is
are
first
the
scientists
and
the
When
as
of those
the
and
of their
that
see
given
in this
contrary, that
the
on
Greece
in
to
the attention
but,
that
nerve-connection
the
case
every
I trust
adopted.
have
of
subject
in
I have
hand,
the
the
on
In of
the
value
by
ing trac-
well-known
characteristic. In the
following chapters
before have
proved
"whatever first
and
"
see
it
the to
success
most
intelligence be
true, and
I may
have
important
acknowledged
as
"
I
have
of
the
those
endeavored
from
achieved.
being,
it deserves
the
reader whose
I have
that to
rules
the
and
done
so
theories I have
foundation
I believe in
be;
place clearly
to
for
two
cheiromancy
second
is,that
reasons
and the
and
didly can-
that built
I up
:
wish time
the to
is
Preface. distant
far
not
labor, I must
fields
of
more
competent
of
in the
that both
the
methods
take
and
has
giving offense
by
this
been
more
to
of
independence should
of
responsibility of
court
their
head
my
study In
conclusion, I
thanks
my
the
attention
scene
these
what
this
results
be
others an
done
found
the
obtained
I trust
"
and
the
by
other
ment encourage-
has
study
will
from
as
reasons,
this book
the
community I
pages. of
been
speech.
can
opinions rules
and
my
to
of
that,
say
of
centers
in
and
country,
used
be
and
raise"
not
take
the
that
if, in
the
condemned,
it be
not
I take
this
much-maligned
round
the
world,
of
ing express-
opportunity I have
which
on
disgrace.
tour
present
my
the
on
to
of
remarks
willing to
am
accusers
should
of
right
my
If,therefore, my
my
civilization
I have
courtesy
to
intention
the
expression, religious
any
people, I
or
condemnation, effort
by
have, however,
I ask
but
than
thoughts
my
expressions
my
their
wish
and
leave
from
statements;
those
and
the
to
as
freedom
civilized
to
the
sect, community,
any
ever
to visit every
hope
for
they
it has
of
and
hurl
of
back
in these
such
demands
show
removed
conscience,
alone
which
to
and
work.
thought
give offense
of health
It is for
to
public
section
any
otherwise, contained
or
the
at
the
from
place.
my
Appendix
set forth
retire
follow, and
may
press
Nothing
considerations
perforce
to
"
who
those
to
do,
from
when,
vii
already
I
visited
received. Cheiko.
EDITION.
SECOND The of
first edition
been
five
of
is in
months,
four
itself
thousand a
copies having
gratifying proof
of
exhausted
been
the
in the which
with
favor
short
space
book
the
has
received. In
it and
revising
more
valuable
those
of
The
Right
the
to
Frederick
Esq., hand
of Austin
of
P.,
Joseph
of the
a
student, by Sir
Leighton,
M.
Hon.
position aspects
Sir
producing
and
the
adding John
Chamberlain,
as
endeavored
world-known
more
Lubbock,
has
not
some
have
Sir
to
it still
hands, including
Arnold,
Edwin
make
berlain, Cham-
Austin
of Aberdeen.
Countess
Chamberlain
lines,indicative
edition, I
second
a
been
placed
striking example
only
of
character,
that
of
his
heredity
in
the
to
next
of but
of
similarity
in
father, shape the
the and
general
career.
Cheiro.
EDITION.
SPECIAL
and
important the
in
student
pursuit
the
hand
The
fn
the
"
Sir John
Sir Frederick
"
The
Swam
I
"
The
Rev.
C.
additions
such
by The
hand
I trust but
of
also
been
the
this
Lady A.
*^
Madame
less
destiny of
right does
not
Gen.
Redvers
*'*
Rev.
MiNOT
Beresfoed,
Charles
N.
Whiteley, Buller, J.
Savage.
Higinbotham, the the
instrumental
clear
Somerset,
William
make
in
mankind.
it still
Melba,
"
in
make
to
B.,
Lord
out
come
J.
Mr.
value
endeavored
Sullivan,
"
to
I have
Henry
*'"
way
D.D.,
Parkhurst,
H.
Lindsay,
*'
historical or
more
and
in
Vivfkananda,
as
''
H.
Esq., M.P.,
Leighton,
Sir Arthur
"
it
Aberdeen,
of
Edition
of Lady
"
to
First
the
Arnold,
Sir Edwin
"
last
of
Lubbock,
"
the
to
several
instructive
publication
by adding
CouNTEvSS
The
of
the
Chamberlain,
of Austen
"
publishing
valuable
more
book
the
added
helplul and
Since
study.
of this
increased
I have
Fourth,
I considered
that
interesting hands
further
I have
Edition
and
Edition, also in the Third
Second
the
In
In
book
Esq.
only of
not
collection
of
influencing cases
enough
in
where the
use
whose
hands
both
the
impression
the
hands for
student, have
owners
thought
the left
to
are
of
the
given,
age the
reproduction. CHEIRO.
ALL
ADDRESS
For see
Part
account
IN
COMMUNICATIONS
ot
the
apparatus
IV. "
for
"Thought
CARE
OF
THE
Photography
PUBLISHERS
and
Register
of
Cerebral
ForceJ"
CONTENTS. PAOll
Preface A
v
Defense
1 ,
PART
I."
CHEIROGNOMY.
CHAPTER
I.
II. III.
Of
Shapes
the
Elementary,
The
Square
IV.
The
Spatulate
V.
The
Philosophic
VI.
The
Conic
The
Psychic
The
Mixed
The
Thumb
VII. VIII.
IX.
X.
The
Joints
XI.
The
Fingers
The
Palm,
XIII.
The
Nails
Fingers
and
25
Type
27
Subdivisions
28
Lowest
or
Hand
and
The
Square
Hand
with
Short
Square
Fingers.
The
Square
Hand
with
Long
Square
Fingers.
The
Square
Hand
with
Knotty
The
Square
Hand
with
Spatulate
The
Square
Hand
with
Conic
The
Square
Hand
with
Psychic
The
Square
Hand
with
Mixed
its
Fingers. Fingers.
Fingers. Fingers.
H
Fingers.
Hand
32
Hand
34
Hand
37
Hand
40
Hand
43 45
The
Supple-
The
Firm-jointed
The
Second
of
jointed
Thumb. Thumb.
Phalange.
Fingers
the
51 53
The
XII.
Hands
of
The
and
Length
Large
of
and
the
in
Fingers
Small
Relation
to
One
Another.
56
Hands
58
Long
Nails
in
Relation
to
Health.
Short
Nails
in
Relation
to
Health.
as
shown
Disposition
by
the
Nails.
Contents.
X
CHAPTER
PAGE
XIVo
The
Hair
XVo
The
Mounts,
XVI.
The
on
Hands
Hajstds."
the
Suggestive
A
Position
their
I. A The
Few
The
Mount
of Venus.
The
Mount
of
The
Mount
of Saturn.
The
Mount
of the
The
Mount
of
The
Mount
of Mars.
The
Mount
of Luna.
The
Leaning
HI. IV.
The
Right
V.
The
Line
VI.
The
Line
VII.
The
Line
VIII.
IX.
The
Relation
Insanity
toward
Jlounts
of the
One
Another.
66
The
Elementary
Square Hand,
The
Philosophic.
Hand.
The
Conic.
The
Spatulate.
The
Psychic.
Nations
the
and
II."
Reference
in
by it.
represented
CHEIROMANCY. Reading
the
to
Hand
the
op
69
Hand
the
to
72
Lines
the
74 ,
Left
and
Line
Sun.
Mercury.
The
of
.
Jupiter.
Nations
Remarks
In
63 ,
of
Lines
61
Meanings
their
and
PART
II.
Theory
Hands
77
of
Life
79
of
Mars
86
of
Head
87
of
as
Head
in
Relation
to
the
Seven
91
Types
The
Line
of Head
in Relation
to
the
Square
The
Line
of Head
in Relation
to
the
Spatulate
The
Line
of Head
in Relation
to
the
Philosophic
The
Line
of Head
in Relation
to the
The
Line
of Head
in Relation
to
shown
by
Murderovis
the
Line
of
Hand. Hand.
Hand.
Conic
the
Hand.
Psychic
Hand.
95
Head shown
Propensities as
by
the
Line
of Head.
^
The
Line
of
Heart
XL
The
Line
of
Fate
X.
98 102
Xll.
The
Line
of
Sun
XIII.
The
Line
of
Health,
XIV.
The
Via
XV.
The
Girdle
XVI.
The
Line
Lasciva of
of
106
and
Venus,
Marriage
or
the
the
109
Hepatica
the
Line Ring
of of
Intuition
Saturn,
Ill and
the
Three
Bracelets
112 114
Contents.
xi
CHAPTER
PAGK
XVII.. Children The
XVIII.
119
Star
121 The
Star
The
Star
on
the
Mount
of
on
the
Mount
of Saturn.
Jupiter.
The
Star
on
the
Mount
of the
The
Star
on
the
Mount
of
The
Star
on
the
Mount
of Mars.
The
Star
on
the
Mount
of Luna.
The
Star
on
the
Mount
of Venus.
The
Star
on
the
Fingers.
Sun.
Mercury.
XIX.
The
Cross
125
XX.
The
Square
127
XXI.
The
Island,
XXII.
The
Grille,
Hands
XXIII.
Circle,
the
covered
The
Skin.
The
Color
XXVI.
the
of the
and
I. A
Lpper
Angle. Angle.
The
Lower
Propensities
IV.
Various
Modus
139 142
144
Hands
of
that
show
a
Suicidal
147
Tendency
149
Murder
for of
152
Insanity and
The
Development
The
Natural
Religious Madness. of the
Crank.
Madman.
155
Operandi
Photography
Illustrations Appendix
TYPES.
ILLUSTRAIIVE
III."
PART Thought
136
Seven
Melancholy
V.
op
131 134
Palm
Suicide
on
Phases
Solomon...
Accidents
and
of
Peculiarities
III.
of
Angle. Quadrangle.
System
Words
Few
the
Ring
Quadrangle
the
Middle
PART
11. The
of
the
Palm.
The
Travel, Voyages, Time"
Mystique,"
Color
the
The
The
XXV.
129 Croix
Hands.
The
Triangle
Great
''La
Lines"
with
Smooth
XXIV.
Spot
the
Triangle,
the
and
Fajmous
Register
of
IV. 158
Force
Cerebral
163-198
Hands
"
"
"
"
^
OF
LIST
ILLUSTRATIONS.
PLATE
FACING
The
Elementary
The
Square,
III.
The
Spatulate,
IV.
The
Knotty,
The
Conic,
VI.
The
Psychic,
VII.
The
Mixed
I. II.
V.
VIII. IX.
X.
XI.
Hand
27
Useful
or
Hand Hand
Philosophic
or
34
Hand
37
Idealistic
or
32
Hand
Artistic
or
28
Active
or
Hand
40
Hand
43
Thumbs The
PAGE
45 Joints
Fingers
the
op
The
Pointed.
The
Philosophic.
51
58
Nails
Figs.
1
and
Figs.
3
and
Figs. Figs.
2,
Throat
5,
Bronchial
Affections. Affections. of
4, 6,
and
7, DeUcacy
8, 9,
and
10, Consumptive
Lungs. Tendencies.
59
Nails ,
XII.
The
Mounts
XIII.
The
Map
XIV.
Signs
Showing
Tendency
toward
Heart-disease.
Showing
Tendency
toward
Paralysis.
of
of
found
"
72
Hand
the
in
63
Hand
the
the
74
Hand Lines.
Fig.
1.
Forked
Fig.
2.
Sister
Lines. on
Fig.
3.
Spots
Fig.
4.
Islands.
Lines.
Lines.
Fig.
5.
Tasseled
Fig.
6.
Ascending
Fig.
7.
Wavy
and
Descending
Lines.
Fig.
8.
Capillaried
Fig.
9.
Broken
Fig.
10.
Chained
Fig.
11.
The
Lines.
Lines. Lines.
Square
on
Line.
Branches.
List
xiv
of Illustrations. FACING
PLATE
Signs
XV.
in
found
PAGE
76
Hand
the
Fig.
1. The
Star.
Fig.
2.
Island.
Fig.
3. The
Fig.
4.
Fig.
5. The
Triangle.
Fig.
6. The
Grille.
Fig.
7. The
Square.
Fig.
8. The
Circle.
Fig.
9. The
Tripod
The
Spot. Cross.
The
Spear-head.
and
XVI.
Modifications
of
Principal
Lines
XVII.
Modifications
of
Principal
Lines
79
Lines
98
87 ".
XVill.
Modifications
of
Principal
XIX.
Modifications
of
Principal
Lines
106
XX.
Modifications
of
Principal
Lines
112
XXi.
Modifications
of
Principal
Lines
121
XXII.
Modifications
of
Principal
Lines
129
Time
XXIII.
the
"
System
142
Seven
of
PAGE
XXIV.
A
Murderer's
XXV.
A
Suicide's
XXVI.
A
Baby's
XXVII.
The
Hand
Hand
159
Hand
161
Hand of
163 Madame
Sarah
XXVIII.
The
Hand
of
Mark
XXIX.
The
Hand
of
Madame
XXX.
The
Hand
of
John
XXXI.
The
Hand
oj
Colonel
XXXII.
The
Hand
of
Mrs.
XXXIII.
The
Hand
of
W.
XXXIV.
The
Hand
of
the
of
Austen
of
Mrs.
165
Bernhardt
Twain
167
Nordica Theo
169
Dore Robert
Bentley
171
Ingersoll
173
Leslie
Frank
175 ,
XXXV.
The
Hand
XXXVI,
The
Hand
T.
Stead
Right
Chamberlain,
Chamberlain,
Esq.,
M.
P
XXXVII.
The
Hand
of
the
Lord
The
Hand
of
the
Countess
The
Hand
of
Sir
John
The
Hand
of
Sir
Edwen
XLI.
The
Hand
of
Sir
Frederick
XLII.
The
Hand
of
the
XLIII.
The
Hand
op
E.
XLIV.
The
Hand
of
the
of
England
Lubbock,
M.
P., F.
R.
S
Leighton,
P. R.
A
Vivekananda
C.
H.
185
189 191
Arnold
Parkhurst,
193 195
Curtiss, Esq Rev.
179
187
Aberdeen
of
Swami
P
183
Chief-Justice
XL.
M.
181
Besant
Annie
M.
Joseph
Hon.
XXXVIII. XXXIX.
177
197
D.
D
199
List
Illustrations.
of
xv
PLATE
PAGE
The
XLV.
XL
of
Lady
Lindsay.
The
Hand
of
Sir
The
Hand
of
Lady
The
Hand
of
a
The
Hand
of
Madame
L.
The
Hand
of
Lord
LI.
The
VI.
XLVII.
XL
Hand
VIII.
XLIX.
LII.
Hand
The
Hand
LIII.
The
Hand
LTV.
The
of
House
the
Commons
of
Melba
Charles
Sir
J.
207
209
211
Beresford
213
Whiteley
"William
Minot
of
205
Member
Prominent
Gen.
203
Somerset
Henry
Mr.
of
op
201
Sullivan
Arthur
Eedvers
Buller,
V.C,
K.C.B
215
Savage
217 ,
Hand
H.
of
N.
Higinbotham,
219
Esq "
LV.
The
Hand
of
Kight
Hon.
W.
E.
Uladstone
231
A
2
upon,
with
curiosity if and
sense
merely ask
I will
rests
patience.
of the
student,
what
the
do
of
nations,
and
individuality
as
history
written.
people whose revived.
world,
they
find
that
to
of
temples
cave
time
a
far
so
of such our
"
manhood In the
this we
no
Aryan
night faded
known,
of
we
which
we
shrine
:
gaze
we
show
into
us
the
are
helps
to
at
of
origin
of
; but
not
light;
the
knowledge
and
;
of
and
a
more
the
known under
people
time
of
known
as
the and
monuments
a
so,
the of
they
a
infantile
into
we
of
the
ingness noth-
child;
mammoth weeds
are
our
no
the from
or
upon
the
to
remotest
Beyond extant,
now
stars
into
but to
borders the
the
back
own.
infancy;
are on
the
even
remote
unknown,
in
its
of
literature
standing
carried
are
that
us
There
are
nation exami-
eternity of time.
tells
venture.
bones
full
Hindus,
of
the
is dwarfed
still more
a
of
the
more
the
empires, as
disposal, that in the
palmistry,
even
dare
East,
to
to
first records
history
cycle
our
Histoiy
darkness
occasionally draw they
the
go
of the
it had
and
swaddling-clothes
arms
that
not
c(^nsideration
fall of
the
the
fragments of this literature
as
conclude
to
the
it had
the
testimony of archaeologists,all point
the
age.
civilization
antiquity
moons
the
trace
; but
therefore
must
the
prehistoric
a
go
in
the
belong
cannot
history
but
are
infant to
to
scant
era
of
days
we
to the
day being
every
greatest knowledge
our
and
of the
cannot
we
that
matters
of
of the
the
beyond
endeavoring
confines
period
India, according
age
that
history
facts
thoughts back
our
ago
of
far-distant
that
to
Beyond
years
linguistic records
back
date
mentative argu-
the
it matters
characteristic
as
of
are
earliest
the
tion posi-
the
satisfactory to
survived
children
wisdom
first
the
civilization.
Aryan
and to
has
to-day
those
to
take
must
thousands
I allude
common
the
and
who, from
furthermore
that
are
when
were
back
consideration, and
who
by
assume
study,
will be
defense,
themselves.
history, and one
the
those
science,we
all,yet
and
philosophy
Looking we
of
dynasties,
were
of this
to
Thus, discarding of
result
of
for
study
world's
oldest
the
sense
this
province
my
history
that
of this
pages
curiosity tempered
partisan.
the
common
origin
of the
days
people
a
the
the
the
be
of the
present
examine
may
consider
earliest
the
I
with
hope,
the
follow
to
therefore
that
not
logic,and
motive, /To
I
it rests, feeling assured
which
reason,
shall
and
standpoint, upon
readers
my
they wish, but, It
Defense.
guide, of
the
of,
vastness
fragments sands
of
of
a
time;
'
A
tell
they
of
us
days before
islands,of civilization regards
As
hand,
the
the
find
we
Rome
before
astronomical
to
that
before
centuries
an
used
in
advance
learning.
It
has
and their
sign
2140
least to
in the
another
to
years,
observed
be
and
for
speaks
study
under
into
other
lands
Vedas
authorities
some
of
learning. When
should
for
inclined
such
of and
of the
impossible
a
was
its
these
tells that
and
followed
It may
be
points
by
the
least
for
world.
Joshi
caste
the
at
the
came
the
even
it with we
of
at
this
of India
teachings
and
Greek
schools
a
be
of
we
race, more
In
present.
study
The
according
such
the
the hand
to
our
tance, assis-
palmistry
was
tised prac-
comes
immemorial
time
origin of
respect, and are
that
the
palmistry.
found,
History again
from
one
observations
Hindu
of
offspring
province
northwest
of
of
find
for
changes
trace
we
been
than
justice
therefore the
have
treat
sessed pos-
from
occupied
such
knowledge
the foundation
at
we
in
in the
spread
is the
been
celebrated
such
make
to
of the
palmistiy
claims
ancient
most
the
it has
estimate.
even
people that
a
spread
have
the
equinoxes
change
a
must
necessary
such
to
been
alone
reason
of
From
had
so
make
to
sun
to
scriptures that
that
Long
temples, the
cave
knowledge
elapsed before
With
have
they
examine
to
examination one
oldest
consider
we
centuries
the
trace
we
the
are
to
is
do
of the
course
consideration.
beyond.
afterward
ol
monuments
precession of the
such
that
yet it is
still
of the ancient
some
demonstrated
which
power
itself ; and
the
Hindu
noticed
intellectual
The
In
the
nations
it is
knowledge.
of, the
and
all those
many
verdant
practised this study
heard
silentlytell that of
of
race,
figures in their temples represent,
era.
been
how
our
antiquity.
and
even
understood
zodiacal
and
was
the
Hindus
mystic figures of the Sphinx
of
ocean
learning beyond,
Christian
the
before
races
proofs of their learning and
that
the
3
first understood
of
age
of
in the
Israel
or
calculations
estimated
been
people who
Greece
point back
India
forever
undisputed
or
days,
our
sunk
Defense.
to
the
present
day.
extremely ancient allowed of the
to
use
greatest
here, in
interesting to describe
and
and
curious
examine
treasures
book
during
of the
few
on
my
the
as
few
markings
sojourn in India.
Brahmans
who
words of
possible,an
as
hands, This
that
book
possessed and
was
I
was
one
understood
A
4
it,and to the
of ancient
ruins
that mark
It
letters
the
red
some
compound, probably varnish
by
; but
the
time, as
covers
regards the antiquityof earliest
the
in
language
Hindustani; art,nor
money,
Just
countries. it is
and
propagated,so
has
its
trace
path
so
civilization
Greek
The
study. and
of
cheiromancy favor
in
the of
423
country
a
book
on
Alexander
that
we
from
the
sight of find that
Greek
We
has
clear
in many
world,
and
cheir,the names
find that
the Great, as
written "
a
in
wide
across
here
hand are
systems.
as
the
most
it has
ages the
been
days
of the
form
of
the
he sent of
found mament fir-
practisedit in
as an
est high-
in the
of honor and
the
palmistry,or^
and flourished,
attention
cient an-
It is difficult
altar dedicated
which gold letters,
study worthy
The
that
was
Anaxagoras taught an
the earth,
considered
stars
of
in which
lucid
and
grew,
"
few
race
Hindus.
it
to
practisedin other of the
been
ways
parently ap-
that neither
past.
it is to
present
was
As
such treasures
the
far-distant but
It
that very
many
were
the
Egypt;
Hispanus discovered,on
cheiromancy
and
into
In
decay.
the Brahmans
and
among
country.
the
whose
are
pledges of
divided
found
to
in the
those
There
defy
to
part belonged
far back
so
By
it were,
seemed and
first
itself to the conditions
owe
civilization
knowledge.
We
B.C.
"
this
written
glazed,as
question.
the
palmistry spread
those
intellectual
most
where
-remarkable.
wear
no
spread far
race
practisedin China, Tibet,Persia,and Grecian
be
dated
such,
release
ever
are
could
jealouslyguarded by
palmistry been
from
dreds hun-
effect of those
been, it
signs of
the
and
The
was
have
decipher it.
or
religionsuits
as
and
that it was
most
was
divisions:
or
country,
ideas
records,however, to
sections
it was
page
may
there
of this strange
doctrines
the
showed
this book
are
herbs, each
alone
will
power
the wisdom
As so
all
but
of
compound
of the
with
yellow skin
this
could read
the Brahmans
even
belong
contained
how, when,
spoilor fade.
failed to
made
in three
written
of
records
of dull
pages
whatever
outer
size,and
enormous
in connection
had
age
vivid
on
that
temples
cave
correct.
liquidwhich
red
some
of
was
strangest features
of the
One
proved
was
old
skin,pieced and put togetherin
of human
with illustrations,
of well-drawn
in
made
was
ingenious manner.
the most
of those
one
Hindustan.
strange book
This
or
in
jealouslyguarded
was
Defense.
to a
Hermes,
present
elevated
to
and
A
inquiring: mind."
We
Defense.
fiiid it also
5
sanctioned
by
Aristotle,Pliny, Paracelsus, Cardamis, Albeitus and
Now, has
long
the
whether
these
a
and
the
of
those
its
age
famous
this And
if
we
Greek
line
mark
of the
that of
power
to
seem
of
men
gustus, Au-
is
we
are
has
been
in
those
that
in
as
right
will
than
a
are
admit, and
ideas
and
authority
their
on
attention
learning
reasonable, should
of
worthy
are
their
their
for
men
has
extraordinary depth
deeply occupied
so
these
to
all that
in
?
other
reject their
we
knowledge
sorcery
and and
devoted
marks;
line of
hand
It
day
Such
may
find
intolerant,one
history of
proceed
from
its
heathens,
was
not
The
the
the
chosen
the
devil
oracle
to
the
period
to
domain
the
jealous
were
have
been
the
a
trial.
conjured
It
out With-
history
knowledge,
up
was
as
denounced the
father
the
itself
of Grod.
that
remark
dents stu-
every
constitutes
church
life,
with
Palmistry, therefore,the
given was
but
not
may
of
mentality;
on,
down
us
opposition
teachings. even
so
there
these
felt outside
or
that
help
cannot
enabled
early Fathers
the
temporal,
spiritualand
the
we
be
to
that
is said
head, the
line
on
; and
brings
beginning
science.
present
witchcraft.
This
hand
head, meaning
life,longevity
possesses. was
of
natural
a
the
subject of
line
the
as
line
the
to
recognized
also
etc.,so the
for
be
to
came
ears,
eyes,
position
church
the
there
nose,
; the
religion is
dominant
pagans
rank
do,
which
be
lightlyconsider
that
than
follows
to
present
were
then
we
study
these
the
in the
even
wishing
that
as
destruction, its steam-engines,
works, thoughts,
mankind
of this old-world
in all matters, both
f any
likely
the
like
age
their
natural
a
heart, affection
power
; but
case
of
of
jurisdiction of religion.
and
tt therefore
man,
of
we
as
and to
names
mount
the
when
study most, is,that
implements
study
a
the
for
time
The
of
or
this
more
an
of
study
recognized
give
to
Emperor
enlightened
more
far
siiould
name
face
the
on
on.
so
the
in the
as
be
to
came
learning
in this ?
knowledge
position
the
point, however,
was
are
that
aside
the
Magnus,
The
philosophers
back,
go
matters, why, in
Now,
if
learning, and
again,
and
its
for
throw
were
concerns
Again,
subject,and
dispute.
mankind
deepest respect, why
of the
people
conclusions
admitted, that those and
of
study
commerce.
thought
of
which
their
an
ancient
one
this
of
men
of note.
question
greatest
like
study
and
others
been
admitted, days
many
such
unless child as
of aU
A
6
the result
palmists, and such
the
During
study; "
and
Tlie
in the
present
of the
ashes once
that
proof
as
it were,
one
It may
be
well for
Satan
majesty
here
to advance
has any
interpretation of London
an
America, during
my
object of persuading One
devil.
went
clerkship
at
"
with
the
Let
followed like rolled immense
noted
a
me
a
small
that
me
far
as
year
(1894),in
what
speed.
coal, which
The
of
course
these
saw
a
"
a
had
few
the
island
people
were
man
to
the
that
tried of
in the
jewel,
a
"
and
stition, super-
truth
which
the
church.
and
be
to
to
alone had
to
the
only give at
with
been
not
give absolution
to
orders.
to my
up
when
one
churches
In
with
the of the
agency
him
sent
prominent
most
I had
!
who
accordance
clergymen,
two
wondered
words
offer
me
a
relations bers remem-
in America,
:
years
ago
with
shaped
mounted the
in
be
Alas
person
against his
by
God
it.
every
wrong.
me
due
of
attack
to
not
if I would
fieryanimal a
of
attacks
church
may
right
that
of the
one
1475, is at
rescue
bigotry
being behind
was
"
is not
used I
of
visited
me
the
the
consulted was
tell
has
thing
light
priest refused
success
all this
clergyman
end
I
salary, of
long description of
one
Catholic
my
to
of
idea
first year,
real
a
that
from
thought that
a
in
cient an-
proof is being added
of
depths
of
right
they had
But
tell you
burning from
so
One.
in this
very
"
a
Evil
that a
before
this
worship.
reputation
or
side
every
palmistry
church's
family because
the
century
the
to
come
accumulations its
and
the
science
into
keeping
nineteenth
delusion, but
a
the
defend
still the
month
one
entire
know
to
the
not
in
persecution which
almost
w^ithin
moment
a
On
by
contains
delight to
examine
us
covered
which
followers
nature's
in
and
the
present has
of the
study is
ancient
dimmed
yet
the
this
fall
revive
to
useful
were
it is in fire of
the
past.
made
were
attempts
; but
out
from
the
and
Figuris," published 1490, which
cum
science
superstition of
to
dares
dying
The
acknowledge
to
Ciromanta," published
Kunst
These
Phoenix
a
attempts
"Die
Museum.
from
outlawed
become
to
several
Aristotelis
British
it rises
so-called
his
instance,
destroy it.
to
Let
for
study
more
vain
ages
Cyromantia
terrified
women,
gipsies.
middle
as,
and
meu
palmistry
vagrants, tramps, and
of
hands
that
was
allowed
parentage,
a
Defense.
other,
upon and
like
eyes."
own
my a
horse, that glowed
it without from
terrified;they thought
Then
arms.
side to
side
it
the
was
It
with
devil.
Defense.
A
they implored
and
all I
but
the world
over
of the
the
I make York
New
chapters
becomes
thus
a
free
to
in
times
portion
of
"Schools
the
Hebrews,
who
language
the
what
be
can
of the
Jews
by Adam
from
Jews
Joshua instead that
were
that there.
the
famous land
of
awful
;
saw
results
to
Seth, and
of the
counsels
Jews
in
were
their
mystery
According
to Moses
to
of
on
and
and
were
in
to
still
the
than
be
cling
authorities, the
at
a
wondered to
the
nations
the when
at
teachings
description
of
the
Adam, It
way.
Joshua,
by
Biblical the
that
cabala
to
to
utilized
time
often
Again,
ancient
Moses
and
strongest
mysterious
some
Examining
Egypt
the
by God
sometimes
was
all
prophets in
Sinai, from
Mount
Among
separate
a
the
find
indications
people.
communicated
was
Talmud.
it cannot
they would many
the
bondage
magic,
it
every
We
they practised.
magic,
by the latter
Seventy Elders,
the
chosen
Jews
the
Among
almost
and
purpose,
had
fourteen
encouraged.
prophets
allied to
tradition lost
In
was
have
man
Over
words.
corruptions that
more
or
say
Egyptians, Chaldeans, the
Judas
opportunities
fulfilled"?
a
the
virgin
a
Poor
that Judas
other
some
be
such
to
the
In
when
whom
priesthood, denouncing
the
and
According
not
sermon.
from
of fate.
betray.
fate, from
leading
a
entire
time
would
high repute by God's
to
book
a
It is useless
for
the
Bible, and
certain
a
of
is
spirit of prophecy
Hindus,
mystical,
is the
mysterious
these
the
in
abominations
for
child
a
from
reported
Judas
a
established
opposition
to
earth
all who
to
verbatim
Bible
ordained
priesthood.
again by God
renewed
find
the
the
to
the
spirit of prophecy,
the
which
his fate would
find
held
from
given
wonders
visit with
words
Scriptures might
we
we
among
more
?
the
Prophets"
as
direct
are
above
of nations.
shirked
were
class
in
acted
was
the
encouraged
distinct
destiny
had
Bible
divinations
that
eled trav-
of the
warning
a
to
its foundation
God
victim,
Gospels do
the
of
the
little later when
a
place "that
the
army,
I have ...
and
was
who
March, 1894,
that
selected
; if he
his
take
It
of Revelation
find
we
and
a
agent
of
end
arise to alter the
would
his
consistent;
the
to
conceive,
would
3d
is not
first of Genesis
I refused.
greatest sights before.
I quote
of the
paper
opening
and
them, but
earth."
church
The
the
seen
comment.
no
for
like that
Satan
represented
sinners
and
anything
saw
never
it,and
intercede
to
me
7
learned ment state-
Egyptians
after
leaving
imbibed
while
Hebrews
de-
8
A
spoiling tlie Egyptians their
rites
with
tinged and
else
while
Egypt
Job.
In
from
that
the
very
them
we
that
in
Thomassin,
English
at
its
at
was
that
which
to
and
these
when
height,
and
opposition the
to
century,
palmistry, the
caused
Among
that
the their
lines
of
works."
Valesius, Schultens, remarkable
more
in
lived
of
of
know
might
know
might
a
of
sorcery,
wording
when
antagonistic
more
translation
cause
verse
meaning
commentators.
Franciscus
The
Jews
of it runs,
men
aspect
men
have
not
all
sixteenth
this is all the
views.
probably
all
the
by
translation
that
of the
were
and
could
their
the
is very
view
this
men
that
the
There
diiferent
very
cheiromantic
the
Debrio,
propagate
time
a
of
support
thing every-
important
most
One
theologians
God,
a
men,
middle
the
of
,
aronse
thirty-seventh chapter
have
of
learned
the
of the
to
hands
among
markings
palmistry
mentioned.
are
arts
but
hand;
seventh
the
advocated
many
"the
are
remembers
age
in
about
verse,
the
English version.
the
by
prophec}"
witchcraft, and
hands
among
it appears
seals
or
that
this is the
great discussions
Lyrannus,
it
This
those
in
it
to
founded, is
are
of
study
sorcery,
in which
study of the
of
find
it encourages
; that
as
therefore
church, it is interesting to notice
the
affirm
We
church
in the
the
of God.
Bible
original Hebrew
find
Among
who
support
given
hand
of
in the
this
placed signs
some
denounced
are
teachings
phrases
its time
them
from
taking
modern
the
things
three
opposition
was
in
their works."
one
the
to
the
and
of
to
common
"the
of
robbing them
magical worship."
creeds
which
:
church,
of
is used
God
fate
authorities
in
that
the
mysticism
important many
the
and
departure,
language
their
of
which
contrary
view
many
"
the
of the
the wrath
are
ceremonials
it teaches
that
In
and
Bible, upon
the
that
their
of
eve
signifiesin cabalistic
ornaments,
external
the
on
Defense.
the
Bible
and
witchcraft
of
this
verse
into
as
stands.
now
other
Among mentioned "
"
bear
relation
a
to
this
point might be
of
days
is in her
right hand, riches
and
honor
are
in her
left."
iii.16.)
What
"And But
to
seem
:
Length
(Prov.
that
verses
evil is in receive
of all the
mine
his mark many
hand
I
in his
allusions
"
(1 Sam.
forehead, to the
xxvi. or
18.)
in his
subject, the
hand." verse
(Rev. xiv, 9.) in Job
is
certainly
A
10
knowledge
particular things, but
on
It
thought.
therefore
whereas
anatomy,
the
infringe
not
a
won't
very
grave
populace
treat
who
the
acquaintances
has
to
of
mysteries perfectly
when
subject
are
I
idea
they should
that
having
all his
do
to
study
read himself the
such
asked
Dr.
what
has the
the to
to
never
connection
the
treatment
as
half
am
the
had
time,
that
they
are
respect the
not
telepathy,
as
"
that with
Newton,
in
day
every
too
and
the
the
and
He
hot
tell the so
often
turns
even
the
or
He
has
knows
of
;
really be
to
not
even
confined
children, or there
that
during fever,
I
inclination
has
illnesses
future
out
He
hand.
the
accurately
so
humbug,
subject.
age.
life
can
all
be
opportunity,
of
dry
?
analyze
past you
So-and-so
brain
fancies
which
qualificationbut
my
it must
fever, pneumonia,
and
much
nature,
Almost
believe
specialists on of
fads
the
of
to
says
the
how
matters
moved."
events
! Dr.
believe
:
inclined
Alas
medical
hands,
occurs
; he
the
hand
and
his
hundreds
are
said that
who
tells
not
man,
I do
other
any
Voltaire
his
think."
; but
judges of such
was
me
thore
to
man
men
without
conversation
told
medicine
cian, physisubject,
a
does
up
strange
a
and
away
sumption con-
ordinary
such
to
So-and-so
of
power
educated
how
know
between
of
the
on, It
So-and-so
works
things
so
in
goes
mysteries of life
appointed
name.
I
hypochondriacal
about
the
study
to
that
because
ordinary medical,
the
to
of
body
and
will
leads
the
perhaps,
sees,
Dr.
even
the
beyond
be
have
that
who
man
regard
a
following
lines
know
not
to
not
Well, sir,you
I have
but
a
the
these
from
unknown
as
to their
science, did
"
that
clairvoyance, and M.D.
work,
my
considers
in
man
patient
idea, because
the
all this
which
; the
doctor
t alents
his
in
way
physician,
the
1 he
Now
on.
five minutes'
devoted
laws
respect doctors
mesmerism, of
be
invisible
to
his
to
life,and
of
little about
medicine
of
devotes so
A
man.
goes
never
one
it not
may
medical
pooh-pooh
it.
so
and
line
n""rrower
kno^v^
may
of
physician who patients ;
a
nothing
to
ailments
thing impossible,
a
in
more
fever
; he
hypnotism
such
Now,
next
common
latter ; the
ordinary
probably
pronounces
physician
know
may
the
treat
the
to
men
point, namely, the unreasonable
in
experiment
the
upon
cures
to
surgeon treat
it confines
that
happens
specialistwon't
nerve
Defense.
and
are
that
is
all. In
reference
to
this I quote
a
few
remarks
from
the
address
of
the
pres-
A
of
ident
said
he
which "
New
the
How
while
Not
with
for
medical
it for
study
that, in of
the
In
words and
once
the
nails
is
London
without
doubt "
indeed
and
the
Paris.
work
on
come
to
if
prejudices ; palmistry the
and
conclusion
the
study worthy
a
hand,
calling forth
old-time
reliable
some
the
by
and
their
same
idea; to-day they
branch
a
embraces
It is the
manner
only forget
was
the
cried
note
attention
inquiring mind." this
to
I
the
publish
belonging
paper
for
prescribing
of
denied.
pooh-poohed
a
would
Hispanus, it
of
profession
same
marvelous
take
to
eases dis-
most
observe
to
courage
physician
every
it
in both
could
they
"
of
relation
Student, a
in
men
persuaded
themselves
elevated
an
medical
profession
only be
could
they
from
of
cause
opportunity
the
To-day
have
indicated
the
seductive
existence
they
years
are
greatest attention If the
whose
had
almost
ago
study of the shape of
the
present
laws
very
diseases
that
years
natural
"
?
impossible.
was
the
cheiromancy:
admit at
hypnotism studies
it,and
the
medicines
twenty
have
many
sternly combating
than
more
that
Society, at its meeting, June, 1893, in
miytliingof the
How
?
of unnecessary
variety
out
physicians know
by hearsay
except
Medical
11
:
many
themselves a
Jersey State
Defense.
to
the
which
letter
following
in
appeared Scotland,
University of Edinburgh,
the
dated
29, 1890.
January
CHEIROMANCY. Sir
Some
:
the
suddenly I went I knew
to
five
the
hands,
a
as
I
that
he
was
that
life-line
the
saw
stubborn
[A certain
aware
that
if
things, even few
suggestions
physiological
1. The
hand
is
a
broken
in
they on
and
do
the
2. Tendencies, such \y
as
rest
possible
psychical
high stage
lines
to
of
on
Would
known
the
anger,
a
and
the
large in
then
carried
in
development
eloquence,
and
quackery of
a
patient'shand.
patient, I
the
usually
you
processes
any
at
far gone
relation
processes
look
replaced by
is considered not
to
I
cross.
died offer
in a
a
few
cells of the ;
the few
gray
but, after
to
man
patient, I
days.
?
matter
all,facts
are
basis.
markings
affection,are
reached
suggestions
on
the
of the
palm
brain.]
peculiar
of
names
it had
questioned
He to
me
humbug
scientific
linear
the
I examined
fate-line,before
in the
on
than
misfortune.
meant
allow
his hand,
examined
more
phthisis.
and
Royal Infirmary, when
in the on
fact, I hardly knew
hands,
old, and
years
wards
the lines
lines
both
and
forbids.
space
palmistry
pausing in those
breaks
of these
of the
one
examine
still less ; in
length, stopped
possible relation
well
am
without
twenty-three
multiply instances,but the
and
I would
believed
palmistry, and
of its natural
found
to
and
that
me
bed,
nearest
walking through
was
to
principal lines,and
quarter
could
I
ago
occurred
the
little of
the
and
years
idea
as
shown
a
reasonable
by
being.
movements.
hand
to
A
12
3. These
movements
Creases
4.
5. There a or
what
and
of
main
will be
line 8. The
caused
Unavoidable
it may
merely the
on
you
the
found
linea.
or
tendencies.
to
so
by experience
a
it,interferes
in to
live.
creases
or
tendency
motions, and
so
bear
to
mental
bent,
the
a
its
resultant
it to that
resembling
crease
with
uniformity,
lines,contain chieflymotor
in vibrations
determining
and
tendencies,
part
the
longevity
junction
its
by
cross
combined
or
of
with
the
be.
may
reasoning
obviously applies
Certain
affected
but
avoidable
to
hand
activity of the
by
of
creases
reasonably expect
train
in
different the
to
events, and
accidents
that
"
shapes.
in the
see
According
what
you
hand
right
to
make the
vibrate
is,accidents
excited
processes
that
being
transmitted
cheiromants,
yourself
resultant
the
acquired
of
in
as
fears,
vague
these
cells
adjoin them,
We
but
marked
and
left hand
acquire.
or
incredible
are,
hence,
;
vibrations
The
vibrations
these
them,
matter
gray
to
in reasonmg
engaged
right hand,
conical
made
reasoning.
of
cells
vibrations
constitutionally;
of cells in the
tracts
by coming
actual
no
protoplasmic
cause
are,
creases
and
capacity, longevity, and
break
or
of the
causing
case
accidents.
perception, awaken
cannot
small
movements,
hand,
every
transmitting
filaments
there
the
of
probably
seem,
intuitive
to
carelessness.
by
9.
train
same
on
branch
finer
and
other
affected,and as
lines
or
affection,mental
uniformity
the
constitutional
branch,
a
or
relation
fate."
coarser
also
and
of
and
produce large
so
definite
a
longevity line,a
with
regulating probably
acquired
line that
"
the
interferes
7. Nerves
fibers; but
fine, and
creases
tendencies
call
line crossing
therefore
effect
the
to
cheiromants
G. A
and
coarse
well-marked
four
are
relation
definite
are
tines, therefore, bear
and
Defense.
is what fore, there-
may,
constitutional
and
tendencies.
regards futurity, I
As
higher
functions
condition
of
of these
the
think
it not
will
cells,enables
that
demonstrate
futurity,but
of
perception
a
Charcot's
tliat Professor
impossible
system
nervous
of
tracts
no
researches
cells,or it.
of
memory
Speranus.
(Signed) It
will
thus
convince
to
and
if
the
even
little, why
a
In
medical This
shape, the
great
a
requires "
that
skeptical
most
not
it
deal, if
work, hcematoma consists
either
by
that
in
Sciences, proving proper
proved,
study accurate
of
the
of
but
sufficient
a
little
a
is
there
which
of
is found
in Paris
the
prediction
anything impossible
in
tests
ears
study
of in
something of
amount
Now be
made
prediction being
has
the
of
study
the
subject
the
lines
be
devoted
be
"
;
by far
assuming
or
the
by
been
more
peculiar
a
thickening of
before
study
who
closely studied, with
more
predicted
a
nized. recog-
lunatics,generally those
argument
my
long time
a
ear
tumor, of
for
been
given
were
could
alone. can
a
blood
in the
madness ear
ear
lately it has
August, 1893, that
the
portion
upper
formation
but
madness;
result
in
the
portion,
upper
inherit
a
tliat
seen
-
it?
to
the
be
the
on
pathological
a
the
years
is,that of
the
accurately
Aeademie in
advance
if,as
ear, made
des
has
by been
is there
then
by
study
a
A
of tliehand, which
has been
wonderful
the most
with
connection
and more
time
Many
kept many
point let
mechanism,
the most
intimate
has told
from
man
that
me
that it
admittingthe
in which
manner
medical
read
but the old-
was
thing.
I draw
men
to
ease, dis-
has
the way
his client.
palmisttreats
he
same
comparison between
a
of nails
the nails alone
paralysis, consumption,heart
acknowledge,and a
a
way
possiblefrom
doctor
also draw
me
of the unfair
account
as
doctor
a
this
a
parison com-
rule treat
palmist. first
In the
place,the
scientific instruments how
; but
the
he dared
patientand the
on
that it is
well-known
a
than
prejudiceswhich
treats his
and
nerves
that the different formations
now
subjectwill suffer from
on.
this
admit
men
diseases,and
the hand
from
At
the
the
so
be,both in
to
in the entire system, and to have
organ
indicate different
predictthat
pronounced
13
the brain ?
all medical
Almost
Defense.
doctor
with
the
a
doctor
recognizedscience
modern
most
tell the
can
many
patientfirst tells
the
has
improvements
patientwhat
all about
to go
he is
himself
and
to
by
; he has
assist his
searches re-
suffering from,unless ; and
his symptoms
diagnosis? Many of that during the great epidemic of La Grippe in my readers will remember to the experiences London, 1890,letters appeared in the leadingpapers relating of a man who "of the most visited seven noted physiciansof the
even
day
then,how
often
these
; that
sufferingfrom for him
without his
after
seven,
arrive at
correct
thoroughly examining him, each said
different disease, and
a
a
all
he
was
different drugs prescribedentirely
to take.
Now, out
the doctor
can
in the
case
of
a
the client, without palmist,
tellinghis occupation,or whether hands, and the palmisthas
married
to tell him
givinghis or her name, or single,simply holds
present past events in his life,
surroundings,health,past and present; and having,by accuracy only,gained materials that his confidence, he proceedsto read the future from the same he has told the past. Now, if the palmist,without one particleof the help that the
doctor
that
however,the the
he
gets,should make is
a
doctor
patienthas been
\
\
charlatan, and makes "
a
one
palmistry a
blunder,it is never
called away
siders immediately condelusion and a snare. If,
mistake,the
by Providence
client
known, but to another
the result is that
sphere."
A
14
I leave
readers
my the
Among
draw
to
and
hands of
have
be
individuality,but with
accordance with
even
the
generations, whatever
the
will
lines
and
that
of
position
the
who
the
another
the
markings
will
But
also
again,
bear
of
hand
in in
shown,
that
families
for
temperament found
one
very
will
case
noted
that
in the
their
different
from
the
also
in
watches
resemble
may
the
of
be
resemblance,
that, if
hand
the
in
it will be
little
very
child
one
the
show
two
no
different
in
run
lines,
the
m
been
also
theory, be found
markings on
has
It
peculiarity will
this
Again,
the
a
popular fallacy that
very
opposite, however, is the marked
layer
(Plate XXVI.). of
skin, and
shown
at any
The of
men
from
be
father,
found
to
that
the
particular parent
superiority of hand
entire and
Sir Charles
all the
is
man
is the
hand have
owing
In
Bell
Bell
writes
in 1874
man,
that
it
"
We
such
ought
corresponding,in its
lines
with
if the
hand
of
multitude
deeply
are
hand
a
coarse
is softened,
marks
attention.
plays
one
Anaxagoras In
active
all call attention :
the ; but
our
body.
the
day,
own
Sir Charles
worthy
the
the
direct
The
will
be
grave.
his hands."
to
of organs, our
them
work.
by
infant
covers
entire
to the
agreed of
of the
exposes
is well
members
organ
system."
exclusively to of his mindy
the
made
are
contrary,
the
means,
cradle
in all ages
learning of
the
of
lines
birth
the
on
instead
other
or
superiority of
parts
The
time
Work,
the
the
At
case.
hides
so
by poulticing
the
will
parents, and
the
with
birth.
and
if the
imjDortant difference
is.
of
particularly noticeable
race
the
the
resembles. It is
"
of
of
are
children
those
use
natures
certain
a
we
place, the markings
temperaments.
some
accordance
mother,
correspond with child
hand
them
gave
is
different
characteristic
lines,to
first
succeeding
each
the
of
the
some
hand
the
that
lives,they will,in those
of
peculiar
markings
least
at
the
find
ir"en
cheiromantic
of
This
widely
different
the
In
alike.
found
lines
; the
twins
their
been
ever
given by scientific
favor
forth.
so
conclusions.
own
ideas
in
greatest possible arguments
formations, mounts,
their
and
testimony
Defense.
Aristotle's
agent men
as
of the
define
and sensibility
of the
passive
importance the
said
writings
hand
"
:
The
find
we
powers
Owen, of the as
and
tant impor-
most
has
Sir Richard
to the to
Scientists
phrey, Humhand.
belonging
motion, to the endowment
:
of
A Sir Eichard "
1849, says
In
:
; each
another
It has as
Owen,
hand
its gestures
speaking
of
assist the
speaker, but
the
and
language
single bone
of
is
Limbs," published
distinguishable from
recognized that the hand
positions of
Nature
in
one
peculiar character."
own
and
i^
The
on
every
known
been
"
in his work
digithas its
long
by
much
the
Defense.
as
lipscan "
hands,
these,I may
the
says
For
:
almost
express
by speech.
the other
for
speak
say,
can
Quintihan,
pai-ts of the body
themselves; they ask, they
promise, they invoke, they dismiss,they threaten,they entreat, they deprecate, they they
We
the
to
for the
the
but that
tve
of the
Wherever
ndges inner skm the
fingers a
the
of
the
nerves
These
cuticle.
ciently exposed
to
and
have thuj
As regards the nerves, medical more more
aerves
nerves
than from
ise, that
the
"
any the
than
any
other
other/portion brain
to
hand, whether
\
for
the
the
to
hand
sense
portion
are
passive
or
in
discover to
minute
see
we
they
are
the
of for
the
at
touch.
the
them
to
of
the
Thus
nerves.
time
same
the
spiral
processes
of the sentient
through
sufii-
the
of touch."
of the
hand. so
of
important part
an
that the hand
science has demonstrated
of the
tips
adapting them
impressions communicated give rise
provisions
their extremities
soft,pulpy
to
extremities
adequately protected,while
are
elastic cuticle
He the
which
veyed con-
corresponding depressions on
ridges have
they again give lodgment
in papillae,
the
to
inspection we
nearer
exquisite,there
most
the
of
pulse with the tongue,
feel the
cannot
particularprovision
feeling is
impression is
that forms is
Bell.
part of the organ
a
give support
cushion
of
sense
elasticityadapt it admirably
and
a
far
fingersbest exhibit
This
we
fingers. On
more
of
sense
surface,and called
fact that
ivitlithe
can
the external
nails
Its fulness
remarkable
a
which
shield-like.
and
apparatus.
It is
touch.
is
so
the
and
is Sir Charles
the hand
on
penitence,
our
time."
skin, the nerves,
the elastic cushion
to sustain
broad
exterior
The
sense.
and
cuticle
of the
extremities
this
in order
made
are
pomts
of
The
:
assents,
our
number
have
can
through
medium The
nerve.
says
mark the
to
we "
skin, he
exercise
and fingers,
they
the
it is the
that
attention
our
highest authority
of
Speaking
give
now
The
touch
doubts,
moderation, profusion, they
will
touch.
fear, joy, grief,our
express
show
system,
It has
also
and
the
been
palm
shown
tains con-
contains that the
highly developed by generations of
active,is in
every
sense
the
immediate
A
16 of the brain.
servant
A very is in
apparent singlenerve
Defense.
medical work interesting
two reality
the action of the brain to the part,and
conveys
in
cords
nerve
"
states
that every
sheath ; the
one
other conveys
the
one
the action
of the part to the brain." In connection
Hand
this,it
in the hand.
found
are
with
He
important meaning. substances
"
found
were
disappearedcompletelyat the wrist the
that
these
the
and
Anatomy
corpusclesin
demonstrated
tipsof
"
his
that these
in the
consider
important to
Meissner,in
(Leipzig, 1853),showed
"
is
Physiology of
the hand
; that these
have
of the
counted," says he,"in of
a
hundred
the
full-grownman,
in papillae
were investigations
noises
or
different in every in
Paris,who was givinghim a greater on
vibrations
of these the state
We
will
now
concerned,may of
men
and
afterward
human
being.
born
blind,but of
in the whom
attention to
our
be the most
from nervous
the
to
the
mind
fluid, by vibrations by those who Perhaps says :
system and
of
have there
of
a
states
has
"
:
been
sex, age, and
the
to illness and
far
exists
between
a electricity sympathy
or
perament, tem-
death."
palmistryis
as
to the ideas
with the "
^^^^
of
communication
of
nerves
_
perceptions
by motions of the subtle essence resembling
accounted
serious
the
to by listening
.
or
find that this
devoted
strated demon-
was
compensated by
in connection
The
to
experimented
man
had
that
found
essence
of the nerves,
or electricity galvanism." We
"
case
what, perhaps,as
.-
point Abercrombie
senses
It
importantpointof ail, namely, as
learning as regardsa fluid or this
four
these vibrations distinct
nature
hearing,it was
the brain.
On
also
And
detect
corpuscles"he could determine of health,and even their nearness
turn
about
by experiments as
up
during life.
forth
hearing could
acute
sense
and eightcorpuscles,
followed
that they gave crepitations
people with
I
line."
square
These
that and
a
and
hundred
"
extinct.
finger surface of the fore-
the firstphalange of the volar one
the end of
forth certain
important nerve
have
very
hand, and
corpusclescontained
and during the life of the body gave fiber, which ceased the moment life became or crepitations vibrations,
a
the
molecular
"unyielding
the lines fingers,
the
corpusclesthat
for
by a theory has
been
very
culated freelycir-
thought to ^.he subject. Miiller the phenomena of the nervous connection
at
present unknown^
1
I
A
.18
a
study of
careful
there the
of the
lines
the
has
therefore, as likewise
lines,but
the
on
of any
there
are
take
if
place, and (as,
As
for
be
regards
considered
convince
every
face
hand
will
those
which
itself to be
the lines cannot It is Balzac of
and
expressive We
will
carefully examine In
the
lines
in
first
devoted natural
the
place, we
their lives to
position there
line
of
came
life,as
for to
the
the
to
nose
thorough
those the
regards physiognomy,
be
in its
accurate
"
our
upon
does
will
communication
Humaine
alone
to
thought A
direct
Comedie
lips,upon
of the
advanced in mind
bear the
different
when
this
or
findings, but
moment. "
We
:
eyes,
acquire
no
"
the
eyebrows,
our
dissemble
not
might
a
be.
future
revealed
as
such
for
that
is
feature
meaning
types of hands
as
in
there
the
natural
position for such
a
study,
of
the
ent differ-
so
back
hands to
came
lips on
How
this
dates
the
face,
by
belief.
a
the
study lay Now,
the
recognized case
The
physiognomy little
a
lines
ground.
and
of the
our
its cultivation.
be
hold
Again, the
before.
as
purposes
his
reasons
with
the
which
necessary.
As
to
"
question
must
referred
ing fold-
only the qualitiesactive,but
developed.
hand
no
in all ?
?
hand, by its
fold
hand."
the
conjunction
period already
hand
to
not
suit the
to
; the
the
turn
now
be
said, in
has
than
The
hands
not
not
means
the where
phrenology
any
easily controlled
too
foreheads
our
will
does
If,
by work, they
fold
to
examination
by
both.
silence upon
imposing
upon
more
and
who
is not
brain, tells
altered
be
study
of
earlier.
found
paralysis)
observed,
by?
that
in
roundings sur-
examination
an
noted
why
case,
continue
cheiromantic
a
combine
portion
allows
faculty
in
aid
of the
and
dormant,
question.
an
be
Is the
inquirer that such
the
of the
study with
as
hands
are
Is
?
health, the
to go
It is true
hand
speciaUst (as
produced
marks
one
the
have
not
are
example,
it will therefore
the
in
so
hand
of lines we
folding.
completely disappear, although the folding argument,
work
lines and
the
"
future, from
palmistic theory
that
the read
to
the
by
body
that
able
even
constant
true
diseases
many
be
the
of
idea
demonstrated, they
it is also
possibly
can
and
produced
not
are
been
the
present, and
produced by
not
are
attempt
past and
hand, independent
That
in
ridiculous
or
palmist is) should
true
member
important
most
absurd
anything
of the
the
Defense.
in the
thing
was
of
that who
men
recognized
be
the
to
study
line
of
of
head
a
the or
originally dis-
A
is not
covered
will
point
proved, and
certain marks
that
be
can
casuallyexamine
even
to illogical
assume,
years
in advance
may,
marriage will
the
reverse.
be,but
it is
regard to prosperityor such
a
should
thing
That
following theory :
the
by each
beforetime
certain laws
that
that it is not
possiblefor
probable; as
we,
that of
part
us
laws
of
doctrine
is
which
find
will.
man
has
Man to
age,
:
affect
free
that
will,I
the
Bible,we
in life
Free
find
things. Looking stands
"
will
in
the
servant
behold us
of the
in all the slow to
the
with
to one's
is the
the
over
Nile,all
perfection. Let
steady stride us
look back"
of
purpose
] \
sight appear
littleor
so
In
do amining ex-
no
in its
control.
destiny and
of
there
free
tions limita-
are
height, to
the
of evolution lessons
the
over
God
one's
fate
of the
and
of
Man
comes be-
Athens, We
gone.
are
bearing us
in all
of nations
past.
Grecians
of the
pages
appearing
world, the
their purpose
the
theory
certain extent,
a
Looking
of Rome,
served
the
of
of the cylinder,ivhich very
The
have
action
another.
one's
background
rulers
of the
only interestingbut
the somber
destiny. but
have
strength,to
the
vealed re-
advance, and
as limitations,
history of
why
affect us,
one
in
laws
dual
oscillation
destiny absolute,the
back
of
to
also in
more
the
at first
thus
we
that
answer
advance
universe
machinery of evolution.
grand relief upon
out
the Pharaohs
I also
preaches, to
w^hich
over
but
argue,
oscillation drives the eternal 01
produced by
entire
the hand
responsive
things
forth.
so
the
death
cognizant
more
strange combination, not
a
appears
all other
and
but
to
become
nature
become
man
and
to advance jurisdiction
my
of
to be
observation,it
result,and
power
fate,in its predictionof things years
here, however,
instructive
my
ignorant of.
was
relation to the effect of circumstances There
peculiarity
proved
of
that
or
and whole, affectagain those laivs,
a
been
one
in its observation
to lead the isolated lives that
question we
this
the
the
as
does
this
laws
mysteries are
he
that
or
course
beyond
hidden
the
called
same
beyond
surelynot
century of time, so
things before
that
fact
It is
as
this
also accurate
point,with
that
who
person
predict illness, health,madness,
can
or
any
tions designa-
Therefore,if proved in
mean
the
reverse,
of such
by
line of life have
persistedin,be
at this
occur
himself.
the
on
the
that
if
for
the truth
be admitted
the line of head
on
length of life or
is not
that
proved, will
hands
mentally, and that certain marks in relation to
19
province to determine, but
our
has been
Defense.
ing higher,bear-
past
may
be
the
A
20
teachers
of the future.
beneath
the
a
Rama
of
dogma in
rose
is forced
the
to
absolute
through the medium niche
the
of
The
depended.
and
George Washington, creed, from
class
the
to
person,
each of
song
be
which
now
Is it hard
that
thus
to
To
foundation.
but
masses,
people which a
have
can
actual
no
of
I would Moral
inquiry,
that
have
beliefs
of
to
the
facts
solid in
it is
repetition of to
the
and
words
form
of
such
established
order
natural
Dugald
in which
practical knowledge
been
which
in the
he
that
cause
it
or
seems
power
with
in
?
causes
of
our
the
All
On
it from
this question "
Outlines
philosophical in
conduct
of events
conjectures concerning the future from the observation
life,of
supporting
in his
:
less
variety
only take
"
we
so,
in
state
absurd
guides
of
If,therefore,
this
says
fection per-
accepted by
Stewart
succession
will
minds.
very
the
in the
multitudinous
exists,if we
from
events
from
sphere, each
believed
beyond so
suppose
all that an
is
to
discords.
sight
intellectual
anything
logicalto
only
boy
creed
grand harmony
the
the
not
which
that
exist,is there
attention
that
have
we
the
harmonies
mysterious
remember
theories
of the
draw
things
one
Philosophy," published 1837,
presupposes us
and
must
been
and
perfection
of
in
its
in
thousands
of
; from
within
If at first
lives?
our
consistent, we
fate,which
standpoint
perfection
law, some
unseen
easily believe
so
doctrine
the
of
be
religions, creeds, and
of
some
hundred
the
of
;
be
to
working
"
preacher,
discords,notes
millennium
the
the
star
a
man
had
again
tones, the semi-tones, and
controls
and
each
fate
smaller
to
significa in-
that, standing
same
in the
so
by
name
man
the
the
President
and
a
man
such
upon
a
a
take
a
;
that
of
balance
about
which
upon
purpose,
all share
in
when
any
Jerusalem
to
called
not
was
Napoleon,
the
ultimate
the
form
believe
shapes
consider
must
shall
in
upon
fashioned
greater,
chords
are
the
in
we
in the
as
position,all
eternal, so
even
of
case
as
appearance
called
quarrel
not
lever
all fulfil their
gamin,
as
will
class, from
to
life,and
the
in
same
great
one-sided, the
was
the
was
thought lay dying
Christ
a
the
in
! he
Ah
?
we
"
or
be
hereditary laws, so
necessity, he
of
banker
fate
"
Egypt,
should
nature
"
bondage
a
anything
he
his shoulders
of
again history is repeated, again
"
there
that
freedom
behold in
crisis
when
age
Moses
a
Was
nature
"
we
Luther,
again God
restored.
church;
one
front.
responsibilityupon was
an
the
to
monk,
destiny
a
behold
Hindustan,
things lead
million
We
Defense.
as
life,
enables
of the pasf^
A
Man
therefore
becomes
bringing into force, by and, through heretofore
of the
deeds and
him,
past
to
stage in the world's
make
It will
'
fate
thus
it becomes
one,
salvation
brothers
being
of the who
This the
on
all,is
of
in
trial,resignation
one's
the
all the no
in. "
On open
the
out
our
of
a
fathers," fate,
own
from
degree
women
would
teach
that
stage
realize
suit
all classes
would
redeem
where
the
the
of the
of
the
munity, com-
see
but
humanity,
ultimate
advancement
to the
for
by its
they
children to
responsialone
them
now
another,
life,and
dangerous
a
to be careful
not
we,
one
serve
becoming to
views, that
of all
of
the
be
other them
and he
fection per-
those
of
it
be
may
better
in
find
the
free
greatest look
We
another, living on
one
even
reward
the
work, has
true
in
their of
no
in whatever
usually preached, and
as
in the
to
scale
smallest
the of
we life,
atom
lions mil-
see
another, struggling
one
in
contentment do
we
find
such
the
a
rest
with
scene,
which
weary.
fatalist will not
made
patience
call us."
to
religion
the
earnestly been
is
There
freedom.
satisfaction
virtue
and
reduced
lower
done, which,
It teaches
success,
will
man
work
higher
more.
(or fate) of
that
the
gives no
"
for
them
it advances
work,
reward
a
hireling;
with
the
bears
out
pleased God
; not
hand,
from
men
hold
not
humanity.
beauty
i-etard
not
does
it has
of their
should
that the burden
and
humbleness affliction,
We
? of
fierceness no
does
It
beings crushing
peace,
benefit
the
doctrine
result
after death
will
this
immensity of
effect
sins of the
the
doctrine
unselfishness,
; would
wage
in life
Contrast
in
the
hereaftereffect. The
a
in every
others, and
men's
best, that others
doing
is the
its
by
fate
the
but
of
what
in
as
on
this
I hold
creed
Truth
of work.
position
"
self, him-
upon
come.
doctrine
plane
after
to
of
destiny, he
react
is therefore
cause
so
men
sisters,should
race,
to
yet
are
This
broaden
and
of
feel for
to
men
see
that
therefore,work
we,
follow, and
It forces
them
would
would
As
of
servant
laws
present
present,
instead
reverse.
raise
personal claim, they
that
self.
of
The
of the
to
the
progress.
teaches
would
dogma
those
seen
the
hilityof life: it the
for
be
and
alone, certain
hereditary laws.
do
we
karma
the
so
maker
others.
upon
21
*
again, the present is the
are
effect of
in the
the
his existence
; and
cause
both
Defense.
and for
close
patiently him
to
his hands and
teach
and
wait, he
well, remembering him
to
make
lighter
A
22
Defense.
"
of
burdens
the
; that
is eternal
be
to
"
of
the
year
; he
no
of
part of
even
from
whence
clay the
the
an
as
is which
for
qualify us
constitutes
life,"or
thought."
There
that
do
than
shapes the words
operations end
; the
the
throne
their
of Professor
inscrutable
an
if not
presumption, of the
Voltaire
universe said
has
and
Life
power
we
know
;
power
its
all that
the
of life,
them
those
control
be
stronger forth
set
know
origin, we who
cause beanti-
or
our
can
of
process
discard
What
not
know
not
beyond
with
rests
the its
not
place
upon
of themselves."
magnified image a
power
does
know
its conditions
not
degradation,
is
will."
we
:
There
:
"
do
tve
to
cessful. suc-
and
simple things
power
ticles par-
study
or
that
but
as
spirit
this
agency
not
afford
some
how
Tyndall
the
a
"
them
in the
church
know
not
in the
cannot
their belief in hew
that
I do
I do
well,
"
is his
the
because
"
end
greatest thinkers. Christian
The
cause.
ends, rough
it
is
preached by
as
of
; evil
of all is he
mystery,
a
in
wo
again
What
because
but
lives
the
success
live,because
to
at
despised by
mysteries, even
fathom,
cannot
acknowledged our
of
of
been
remain
think,
to
hundreds
know
not
have flhristian, "
I refuse
are
finite mind
the we
that
"
I refuse
say,
of fate
to him
failure
all do
spirit,then
a
in the
so
believe
to
be
of God."
forever
may
"
well
as
has
teachings
obstinately refusing
might
man
that
he
the
And
is all.
its purpose
naught
or
we
"
if there
doctrine
the
right
beyond,
things, and
creed
hands
life
no
'Tis
moment,
as
best,that
; but
all
to the
the
be
came
mind,
is the
enemy
marks
he
my
"
ranked
A
is,to
; this
hand
if there
spiritof
eternal
his
do
well
life,as
it still has
honor.
the
chain, which
life's
be,
may
with of
success
his
he will
but
"
the
in
wrong
end, for
This of
do
good
as
is
will
served
in
link
a
link
that
be
patience,to
is
he
that
small
how
creeds, 'tis naught
clash
necessary
with
feel
will
He
matter
no
borne
the
there
others.
that
acts
within
the
words
of
us
every
day
us
without
sulting con-
us."
And
lastly,let
consideration a
of
draw
me
what
takes
higher law than that of We
have
have how
seen
support natural
now
seen
we
have
how
place
We
examined
to
around
"
:
A
show
us
Emerson must
little that
tvill regulateseventsP this
study
hard-headed
even
its theories. ;
our
attention
have
has
survived
materialistic viewed
it from
a
it from
from
science a
natural
age
brings
to
forth
light,and
religiousstandpoint,
and
it is
We
age. facts we
find
to
it
religiousj;
A
find
we
that
good
responsibihty of
self
it
that
opposition We
use
gives
it
teach
must
it
of
because
lastly,
the
to
doubts
to
its
or
man
such
I
foundation,
they may
know
be
secret
ihat
every the
portion
of
of
power
as
the
the
that
they
;
do
not
in
taking
portion
unless
may
they
be
the
have
power
very
one
that
as
do
not
seen
that
marks
not
in
been
contain
may
constitutes
the
a
selves them-
unless
do
they
still
facts,
atheism
have
they
and
Because
that
not
every
of
why?
law
must
support;
do
they
And
Unless
deny.
its
against
position
that
know
they
a
beings.
mankind,
that
know
such
possesses.
We
proofs,
of
reason,
it
power.
of
because
of
it, because that
be
the
knowledge
the
Discard
truth
argument
intellectual
they
the
may
of
spite
in
and
?
of
it
Foster's
existence
and
sake
support
controls
universe,
whole
by or
whose
one
knowledge
using
reasonable
law
its
done
of
doctrines
its
cautions,
be
to
the
who,
that
say,
is
in
only
not
its
for
must
person,
would
justice
that
woman
a
"
it
we
use,
in
then,
help
others,
to
it,
warnings,
What,
must
we
through
its
in
all.
to
No,
?
but
life,
of
done
be
can
23
Defense.
hand.
know
every
the
life,
of
acter
also
although
note, and
of
certain
certain
that
case
the
types
proceed
once
There
kinds
of
will
of
of we
can
to
one
of
types
of
each
myself
varying
shape
make
which
in
up,
fore there-
will
We
ous vari-
their
with
is
which
another,
a
the
undoubtedly
hands
and
worthy
is also
determine.
to
temperament
hands,
I
that
and
than
work
different
the
overlooked.
it is
defect, yet
for
much
occupation alter
hand
of the
The
subject.
cheirognomy
relation
types
character. be
again
may
subdivided
^
types
seven
of
consider
varieties.
seven
The
various
suited
more
their
seven
are
V
any are
to
in
modifications,
into
concert,
shape
characteristics
the
constitutional
province
immediate
more
at
by
to
very
one
leading of
the
by
and
portion
exercise
the
almost
for
degree,
this
to
the
out
suitability
their
and
hands
point
to
relation
in
observed
have of
endeavor
I will
Later,
shown
as
study,
the-
of
branch
fascinating
a
nations
of various
characteristics
The is
the
church,
the
car,
salon.
the
or
raikoad
the
in
sitting
while
strangers
of the Hand.
Language
Cheird's
26
are
:
I.
The
elementary,
II.
The
square,
III.
The
spatulate,
IV.
The
philosophic,
y.
The
conic,
VI.
The
psychic,
VII.
The
mixed
the
or
useful
the
or
the
or
hand.
the
active
type.
hand.
knotty
artistic
type. hand.
idealistic
the
or
type.
nervous
or
the
or
lowest
hand. ^^
The
civilized
Among therefore
square
with
nations
square
; the
with
mixed
square
conic
with
with
the the
blending
being
rarely
divided
into
fingers, short;
knotty ;
square,
the
by
elementary
square
fingers
fingers.
formed
are
with
commence
the
long
varieties
seven
the
fingers square
;
the
with
the
square
found
seven
square with
psychic
of
the
in its
heads, with
types.
seven
purity, for
as,
square
ple: exam-
fingers,
spatulate fingers fingers
; and
the
we
; the
square
Plate
I."
THE
ELEMENTARY
HAND.
CHAPTER
THE
This
^
hand
it is short
fingers. Some
fingers
should
have or
them
even
the
the
they
short.
he
states
the
whole
body,
dominates
the
in the
capacity,
and
have
They
beauty
thick, with Such
"
certain
upper
people The
Hands
part in
it is in
the
low
of
to
violent
are
without
do
:
or
cunning,
The
them. nail
fury but
}
passions
the
aspirations ; they
cunning
Nations," Chapter XVI.)
of
but
not
coarse, seen
the
brute.
form, color, and is short
generally
courageous.
instinct,not
eat, drink,
portant im-
little mental of
spiritof destruction. of
most al-
palm
is the and
hands
heavy, full,and
in the
but
such
human
lines to be
order
; love
of
passionate
and
to
thick
very
the
than
the
more
few
have
type
a
thumb
phalange
temper,
also very
more
their
over
the
size of
animals,
rule. "^This
nature
are
of the
as
find
to
nature
brute
among
gers fin-
nearly
the
to
this
that
case
physiognomy
palm is always
the
leans
27
\
animal
There
possess
control
no
appeal
murder,
a
are
the
hand
clumsy.
they
or
not
people
commit
what
little
does
the
rare
intellectual
form,
people possessing such
The
palm.
does
more
and
palm
be
may
very
deduction, therefore, is that
elementary
short
the
on
palm
of
proved
proportion
more
a
work
of the
bones The
hand, the
fingers
the
on
the
hand."
the
point and
that
in
however,
it indicates
they a
of the
intellectualitythe
been
not
it is
ance appear-
fingers,and
examination
an
That
but
doubt;
Dr. Cairn's
In "
short
length
show
to
has
palm.
When,
long,
are
the
no
length.
same
fingers
are
be
can
It
the
; but
palm
correct.
than
longer
there
the
it is not
that
In
mentality.
notice
to
state
the
than
longer
that
of
type
large, thick, heavy palm,
palmistry
on
be
found
long, of
palm
when
show
been as
books
always
will
statement
long,
with
clumsy,
TYPE.
lowest
the
to
LOWEST
It is always important (Plate I.).'''
nails
and
and
OR
ELEMENTARY,
naturally belongs
coarse
IL
sleep,and
reason.
die.
and
square. If
They
they sess pos-
These
(See
also
III.
CHAPTER
^
The
of
with
People
for
place
to
but
custom
prefer
They they
material,
adaptable but
of
will,
They
in and
they
often
outdistance love
but
promises, Theiiand
are
the
greatest disbelieve
in fault all
great
and
is
they
that cannot
show,
in inclined
understand. 28
principle, to
'-'-
reason
they
ask will
the
sincere
by
a
and in
twelve-inch
in not
the
go are
tion, imagina-
or
study.
they
not
They
character,
honest
and
;
for
ideas.
ana
are
slaves
and
strength
inspirational
home
They
work
they
practical
love
affection.
strong
and
their
are
originality of
in
tenacious,
are
to
force
all
they
are
little
brilliant and
in
religion
dogma
and
have
more
commerce;
they
In
and
to
have
they
opposition
art;
or
things.
sciences,
friendship,
in
manner,
only
not
order,
but
application,
in
place,
and
poetry
/jWitb
conformity
methodical
are
they
their
exact
law
in
discipline,
determined
over
to
demonstrative
not
stanch
have
its
is
type
a
life.
precise from
perseverance,
practical
of
base
/^z
love
in
kept
and
great
walks
more
they
are
war,
versatile;
or
work
naturally
but
substance
prefer people,
to
agriculture home,
in
but
respect
enthusiastic
success
they
;
with
not
are
to
peace
endowed
win
they
extremes
not
instinct,
are
They
quarrelsome,
not
are
is
Such
and
punctual,
the
at
square
IL).
square,
nature,
everything
brains.
many
and
authority,
respect
and
their
to
reason
resigned;
to
in
they
;
habit.
They
of
grace
so
short
orderly,
are
innate
everything
household,
hand
in
found
wrist,
(Plate
square
generally
are
a
any
habit.
and
custom
such
from
however,
not,
well
as
is
it
because
the
at
square
themselves
fingers
useful,
palm
SUBDIVISIONS.
ITS
AND
the
means
the
nails
the
type
^:
a
the
called
this
and
fingers,
the
also
hand
square
HAND
SQUARE
THE
rivals.
They
courage en-
duties
of in
true
business.
rule,
Plate
) "
II."
THE
SQUARE,
OR
USEFUL
HAND.
"
has
finest useful mechanism the
and
though
Now-
the
gives more
first
place,the of
power
how the
without
student's
will understand the
why
is
his
to
character.
If
hand
the
clearlywhy
idealism.
I have
of
the
imagines
that
or
the
people
and
the
with
the
often
once
inner
said
nature;
me
the
the
same
:
the
A
is
they
of
a
the
up
the
"
very
power
masterful
same
artistic
of the world
of
that
to
counterpoint "
imagination and people,and I of
or-
discouraged.
He
ivy-clad towers
often
be it musical life,
is
have
the
not or
way
the
is,after
be
that
"
and
I have
abilityto bilng
in which
the
though
artistic nature
have
with spirit,
artist to
called the
commonly
of life will show
artistic hands
not
of
artistic
an
be what
must
It is sufficient for the
approbation
and
anced bal-
proceeds from
musical
artistic, yet they may have
also
gates of
linked
we
also appliesto literarypeople,
observation
in the
man
the
moment,
a
wonderfully
be
which
hands
leads
hand
or
thus
must
palmistry is
woman
the smallest
the world
"
or
of the
that
conic do. to
to
of
composer,
absolutelynecessary, be
that
study build
student
purely conic
observed
and
of
man
appreciationof what
their ideas before square
a
shape
artistic ; but
the
more
that the
because
that literary,
conic
foundation
the
It is here
mance.
is
must
unknown, through I find that
It
the conic
musical
instance,harmony
given great study
find this rule invariable. from
as, for
"
student.
consider,for
we
dispositionwhich
the
be
inspiredin ideas,is certainlynot
how
matter
that
it should
of the
The
faculties. inspirational
and
of the known
the world
who
hand
musical
will show
while continuityof effort,
applicationand
and
the
more
that
that
logicalreason
a
inspirational, imaginative nature
to reach
or
is
hand
square
side
more
the foundation
those
hand
square
say
little consideration
a
that there
to
strange
thoughtful,the solid,the methodical,and
the
the
the
FINGERS.
appear
may
head, yet
imaginative,no
quality of brain
"
this
the case, but
fingersgive the intuitive matter
sight it
under
only is
not
In the first
the
kind, and
every
with
men
CONIC
WITH
HAND
SQUAKE
at
composition comes
so.
by
out
well,
as
are,
spatulatefingers. THE
such
turned
been
of almost
work
mechanical
love
good engineers. They
and articles,
household
things,instruments, and
useful
make
no
Language of the Hand.
Cheiro's
30
the
the conir,
artist to
all,only
the
vt
riixed
hand,
'his own
igar hall-
}.'
The
mare
what
on
perhaps,
nature, shine
to
and
will
knows but
the
is
perfume
The
pointed and
mean
artist
but
such
a
with
will
man
the
types to
well,
have
makes
subservient
will
his
opposite
extreme
is
of
with
each
all
it
the
fuse re-
square
mankind.
FINGERS.
to
people
causes
proach ap-
with
long,
start
well,
and
Such
nature
a
an
caprice.
pictures,
plans.
makes
to
and
mood
every
but
combined
palm
square
other
diamond
might
contrary,
of
unfinished
It
two
hand
supple,
generally
will
will
he
discuss of
a
the
hand
a
the
An
ness busi-
blending
of
contradictory
too
of
second indicates
from
the
subject he
purpose,
It
will
with
in the the
square,
the
rarely, if
he
be
ever,
rise
of
ideas
idea
any
the
to
but
;
from
great
shape, thumb
times some-
of
; the
first
and
the
; at
and
scientific
ease
to
joint
spatulate,
imaginative greatest
in the
than
men
among
that
middle
third
will
so
different
versatility
great
most
more
found
is often
much
very
and
finger being
every all.
FINGERS.
MIXED
seen,
inspiration, again
descend any
AND
often
back
bends
or
full of
be
ical ; he will
consists
pointed,
Such
pointed.
is very
three, sometimes
or
is
HAND
SQUARE
that
type
a
women.
among
man
filled
the
of unfinished
studio
a
itself,then
On
formation
a
expects
own
your
the
succeed.
ever
This
is
have
office
THE
a
the
Such
for
fingers is rarely found,
psychic
long nails.
type
made
PSYCHIC
of
31
sufficient
that
advantage
AND
form
them
world
earth."
greatest
the
"
reply,
flower
the
purely in
seen
and
fingers
the
I
the
the
HAND
with
it is often
If
Subdivisions.
its
Yes,"
for
scent
SQUARE
hand
square to
to
to
THE
"
gold."
glitter.
to
its powers
exert
and
sufficient
not
gold
its
allow
to
type
he
Hand
Square
such
finger fourth
times
such
extremely most
a
log'
practical
want
height of
of
tinuity con-
or
power
success.
I have
type, but divided.
not
this
space
is
an
at
my
example
disposal for
the
to
thus
student
give of
how
the the
subdivisions seven
types
of
every
may
be
;
CHAPTER
THE
^^
The
resembles
the
instead
of
broad
When hand
wrist the
When
soft
irritable
spirit.
Such
long. hand
spatulate belongs
and
people, large
hand,
with
characteristic individuals makes the
thus
known
fairly all
is
explorers rules
become in
strike
of
famous life out
its
these for
of
it
but
almost
themselves,
no
It
and
is
invention. hands
find assert 32
to
seek
matter
right
to
stick
and
also
they possess
it
is
a
striking
most
characterizes this
in
the such
to
rule,
a
that
the
the
that
independence.
The
also
a
but
cannot
As
spirit
themselves, their
restless
confined
life.
them
No
the
and
doubtless
causes
mechanics
and
and
of
later, but
attribute
fingers.
independence
slopes
enthusiasm.
but
means
of
hand
and
discoverers,
walk
every
discoverers,
spatulate
by
est great-
firm, indicates
starts,
energy,
the
itself.
denotes
action,
development.
their
it
the
little
a
of
palm
the
and
peculiar
is
of
purpose
and
well-developed
engineering
hard
explorers,
palm,
unusually
the
hand
the
place,
love
singular a
fits
finger
the
contrary,
points
of
each
is either
wrist,
spatulate
case,
in
because
shape
two
energy
the
first
intense
long,
such
for
of
works
the
the
when
hand,
is often
in
the
and
the
of
also
the
on
these
tip of
III.).
the
when,
fingers,
navigators,
found
possessing
them
position form
of
the
full
but
mechanics,
be
may
in
is at ;
the
type,
(Plate
fingers
discuss
person
great
and
engineers
great
is
the
to
a
Now,
has
of
spatulate
which
preceding
fingers
will
excitable,
flabby,
the
significance
the
place,
and
anything
It
the
and
restless
nature
the
but
mortars,
formation
of
We
in
the
of
base
the
at
consider
first
the
base
because
only
not
of
toward
HAND.
use
breadth
wrist.
the
first
must
In
to
found
is
toward
we
the
at
or
pointed
breadth
called
so
squareness
greater
becomes
back
the
SPATULATE
chemists
that
spatula
having
the
at
is
hand
spatulate
IV.
depart
to
that
spirit
from
and
unknown, what
grade
always a
in
marked
or
some
in-
Plate
III."
THE
SPATULATE.
OR
ACTIVE
HAND.
The
dividuality
of
brain
other
to
women
we
rut
made
and
women
they
is
true,
thought This
consider
now
The is the for
their
for
the
But
if
he
has
for
action
the
inventive
some
days
in
the
make
he
domain
of
if
broad If
life
he
of
often
are
life
their
to
I
and
follow
the
Such
men
They
thought. in
wrong of
heralds
the
rule,
a
the
way
some
new
fellow-men.
have
mentioned.
just
new
a
with
they
in
are
a
day.
necessary,
the
development He
will
flowers
if
These
priest. the
all
nearer
little But
power
they
therefore
the
at
he
inventor,
an
and
railways,
ideas.
be
world
;
as
be
"
of
agents
only
men
not
them.
development
he
comes
for
hunt
earth
the
they
;
will
before
advance
divisions
two
angular
greater
the
give
two.
that
the the
later,
the
ships,
reason
gospel
revolutionize evolution
of
talent,
new
to
with
locomotives,
simple
are,
the
to
hand
practical
making
they
gone
of
at
their
not
get
we
army
they
because
the
time
whole
the
have
are
that
looking
suiting
resent
a
sake
the
We
will
meaning.
spatulate
more
years
down
us
that
their
but
also
of
way
to
hand
this
simply
hands
;
will,
from but
sheep
before
work
that
is
them
such
for
means
any
original
an
inclines
cranks,
of
often
their
brings
call
to
spatulate
very
life
or
It
"
with
preacher
or
by
not
have
they
engineers,
centuries the
about
set
and
the
precedent
independence
ideas.
pleased
by
of
33
doctor,
actress,
because
of
people's
are
singer,
rules
simply
sense
with
it
are,
all
discoverers
great
our
of
their
and
things,
break
but
eccentricity,
A
own.
will
development of
their
Hand.
Spatidate
the
formation the
be
of
wrist,
wonder
that
they
the
his
they
be that
possess
their
have
are
the
fingers
his
talents of
things
botanist,
a
people
all
use
created.
will
bent if the
he
be
has
demigod
God
they purpose
life, type.
square
flying-machines
invent he
will
useful
more
at
of
base
took
six
would in
the
V.
CHAPTER
The
is
easilyrecognized
concerned, it is
not
they play
with
than other like
of
types to
attain
to
knowledge
of mankind
all
If
things.
paint, they color
of
Theirs
is the
matter;
of
materialism
the
Oriental
mystics found
They in the
for
this
they
have
but
way
is of
knowledge
as
over
power
; if
of the the
seen
thinkers, careful
over
the
among
and
character
more
the
the
domain
they
even
found
England,
of
34
/)
They
dreaded
the
; if
the
and
spirit.
borderland
grub-worm largely and
Yogis,
among other
striking examples
Catholic
in
they
clash
of the
of
and
are
Tennyson.
Church, rarely
Baptists, Presbyterians, and
and
in the
as
mystery
people
very
more
does
so
dramatic
Manning, the
harp
all kinds
love
the
Brahmans,
still in silent
are
the
Cardinal
Jesuits
rarely
little matters,
The
in the
is all.
power,
beyond
where are
In
Newman,
that
people
discard
hands
numbers.
gives
of
thought,
Such
Cardinal
of
largely
In
of
follow.
in great
English Church,
Independents.
aesthetic ; theirs
peculiar
ambition
vaporish drapings
particularly in India.
them
hands
and
rarely, if
of
tone
through
the heads
poets, they
are
cloudland not
nations,
possess
they
of wealth
but
much
as
go
Such
man.
over
form
responsive melody
kind,
will
they
and
chord
different
a
and
visionary similes
dare
also
its
people,
end;
give
the
theirs
in the are
this
mystic
peace
of
with
hand
oped bony fingers,devel-
rule, students,
a
gratified
they preach, they preach
are
life
other
as
of
gleans wisdom,
every
only theirs
from
privations
In
it
rived being de-
"
shape
in the
know
are
coin.
humanity,
distinct
be
of
with
success
as
have;
to
are,
they
;
This
angular, far
As
type type
a
it,and
upon
clink
the
such
mankind
subjects. They study of life ;
favorable'
a
People with
gold.
ever,
and
generally long
it is
:
philosophic
sophia, wisdom.
and
long nails (Plate IV.).
joints,and is
jpMlos^love,
Greek
the
from
"
explains itself,the word
of this type
name
HAND.
PHILOSOPHIC
THE
use
secretive; they of
little words
are
;
deep
they
are
The
with
proud
the
but
injury,
they
of
development
this the
is in
they
earliest childhood and differ
"
followed
trouble
been
and
devote
sometimes
whence
eight
their
they
that
idealism.
toward
did
the
difference
I have
carefully considered
any
direction
coming
to
a
in
come
I have
opportunities placed every
in the
country
likelihood With
jointsare pointed
of my these
the
but
the
it is the
East, where
from
all claims
that
all
a
this
I
live.
writers
on
ject this sub-
on
taking
read
few
a
as
the
by
century,
study
whirl
the
books,
fad, or
a
and
as
the
up the
keep
smallest
point. in
readily understand
of
with to
of one
that
her
poetry mind
the
before
country,
one
in
types
opposition
When
ward for-
comes
unbiased
an
who
lady
a
hand
hundreds
often
more
by
in connection in
society from
to-day she
against, and
only
of
written
but
to
examine
disposal, not
not
the
mixed
opinion
for
he will
ship relation-
said, without
fingers is
that
or
points
the
even
writer
people
hand,
short
an
to
the
the
from
may
modern
pamphlet
the
with
time
Of
greatest injury that has
Such
endeavored
on
excess
any
of
soul
nineteenth
the
generally
mysticism.
the
have
less,to
on
have
the
for
reputation of being interesting,then
with
hand
that
The
day.
line
a
study.
my
own,
deciding hands
in
before
considers
the
in almost
but
there
is
some
but fairly accurate. infallible,
hands^ therefm-p,it
are
the
case
in
I read
week
I
my
world,
being,
in
disappear into
must
peculiar characteristic
fingers
analyzing,
the
and
contact
on
at
religion or
palmistry, and, having
taken
conclusion
in
authorities
done
opinion
I
in
body
the
tinsel
a
work of
When
largely from
other
of
know
When
have
the
often
been
square
this
they lead.
observations.
this
of
the
In
very
book
a
not
exponent
an
brain, writes and
to
Only
ago
type
own
make
names
are
himself
months, sometimes
to
hands
an
wait
They
power.
Such
found
kill
too
has
few
came.
months as
his
life
are
and
writers
"
which
by
write
been
out
a
the
they rarely forget
;
of
them.
separate
closely what
too
gentleman
something they
it has
palmistry
to
will
this
others
less fanatical
or
starve
of
to follow
done
lady
and
I fear
palmistry.
the
Yogi
definition
my
has
more
35
patience
serve
examples
the
kindred,
in
are
from
the
with
keeping
wonderful
most
with
opportunities
so
egotistical,which
different
being
patient
are
and
opportunities,
of
pride
Philosophic Hand.
or
type
l^ornp
in
mind
thonyhtfnl people
Again, such
reverse.
shape
of
be
of hand
a
development
which
that while
the
the
gives
determines
developed
the
smooth, love
of
'vs^hether that
Cheiro's
36
being and
as
fits
a
of
conic
they
consider
almost
these
that
make
from
the
men
practical
will
which
-martyrdom
self
gives
the
the
with
women
di'ones
in
the
of
the
of
which
of
type
humanity.
inspiration
the
of
which, of
pursuit
It
about
finger
with
type,
conic.
the
their
the
square
the
of
mysticism in
brings
philosophic hive
the
end
to
tone
hands,
characteristic
vast
The
or
these
patience
the
Hand.
solemn
thought
Again,
have
is
the
religious
the
mankind.
for
characteristics
opposite and
combined
the
of
or
associated.
become
truth,
chemicals
for
specially
them
rule,
for
be
and
square
they of
analysis
of
power
Language
hands
with
is
that
the
peculiar so
what
love
blending ideas
different
N
-H
X-^ "tiPe
CHAPTER THE
The
CONIC
VI. HAND.
conic
TO.
is medium-sized, the palm slightly hand,properlyspeaking, and the fingers full at the base, at the and conic, or slightly tapering, pointed, V.). It is often confounded with the next type, tipor nail phalange(Plate the psychic, which is the long,narrow hand,with extremelylong,tapering fingers. The main characteristics of the conic hand are impulse and instinct. People with the conic hand are often,m fact,designated"the children in connection with this type,but it is of impulse." There is a great variety soft hand,with pointedfingers, and rather long more usuallyfound as a full, nails. Such a formation denotes an artistic, impulsivenature,but one in which love of luxury and indolence predominate. The great fault with this type is, that though theymay be clever and quickin peoplepossessing thought and ideas, yet they are so utterlydevoid of patienceand tire so if ever, carry out theirintentions. Such peopleappear that theyrarely, easily, to their greatestadvantagein company, or before strangers. They are good drift of the b ut a conversationalists, they grasp subjectquickly, they are in knowledge,as also in other things; theyhave not or less superficial more the power of the student, throughwant of application ; they do not reason, which makes them theyjudgeby impulseand instinct. It is that quality in friendship and affection; one can easily offend them over little changeable in contact things.They are also very much influenced by the peoplethey come in affaires de with,and by their surroundings.They are impressionable cmur tempered, quick; theycarry their likes and dislikesto extremes ; they are usually but temper with them is but a thingof the moment. ever, They,howwhen out of temper, speaktheir mind plainly, and are too impetuousto studywords or expressions.They are alwaysgenerous and sympathetic, 37
L
then*
selfish where
given
what
relates
to
more
influenced
easily influenced other
sympathetic of
rapture, When
of the
will
descend conic
to
all the
company
and
has
chosen
the
the
They
is hard
of
to
smger
than
by study
stir the
will
carry
of
emotions of
remembered
his
the
the
of others
disposition of
who those
to
the
conic
the
is
give
to
the the
the
type
of
hand
the
individual
logic but
will his
relates
; it is the
good qualities
firmness
and
for
sparkle
to
foundation
the
actors,,
emotional more
or
they
upon
study.
do
them.
It
by
the
will quence elo-
must, therefore, be
natural upon
mor"
nature,
multitudes
words.
as
in
hand
conic
reason,
emotional
move
It
individuality
own
own
artistic
success.
the
how
of will.
an
purely
a
to
trifle.
any
thought,
her
any
greatest heights
people depend
her
more
respond quickly
that
or
hands
are
sorrow,
making
follow
artistic
than
brilliancy and
why
by
of
or
reason
such
know
orator
They
public life,such
a
than
not
the
of such
owners
encouraged
toward
who
that
of
out
all the
energy
that
actress, from
by
denotes
if
lead
audience
not
tongue" that
; and
the
artistic,but
the
so,
of hand
all the
moment
will
; the
at
consists
impulse
despair, over
far
go
it is for
all
her
away song
and
the
but
but
rise to the
and
and
with first,
forgotten
of
church,
artistic.
are
elastic,it
will
and
be
things well,
The
and
not
money
falls often
carrying
that
of
nature,
those
represent
the
very
if the
and
by greater
in
the
strangers,
it must
do
and
accentuated
quickness
inspirational feeling will
it to the
this class
depths
determination
before
But
charity
they
that
lowest
actresses, singers, orators, career.
for
deservedly
say
emotional,
are
is artistic
and
energy
been
charity which
the
to to
possessing
hand
hard
hand
have
than correct
more
women
first-mentioned,but
life the
called,and
artistic,than
and
the
conic
The
comes,
been
influences; they or
beggar
for
by color, music, eloquence, tears, joy,
Men
type.
giving
temperament
the
by
charity, but,
sympathies
their
in
not
is all.
that
really be
It would
ideas. are
The
has
interesting type
This
and
beggar
of that.
think
well, they give, and
"
such
to the
credit
get credit
To
for
money
rouse
may
that
get
never
give
we
fingers never there
anything which
or
give
to
discrimination, consequently
of
power
practical types.
more
savmg
the
not
hands
These
lot of the
easily influenced
are
anybody
to
moment.
m
have
they
alas ! here is
they
matters;
money
concerned, it is true, but
is
personal comfort
own
Hand.
of the
Language
Cheird's
38
temperament
which
the
talent
The
rises
and
singer,
greater
Study
the
strongest:
to
her
that
great
as
a
than
things
reach
by
be
can
greater
will
study,
point
the
ent differ-
by
conscientious
for
heights
such
spatulate
of
treatment
persons
the
and
design
for
type
work,
and
hand
idea
and
try
color,
the
The
and
tones
but
semitones
that
to
perament tem-
is
indicates
foundation, they
method, successful.
are
to
say,
give
subdue
the
painter
a
that
ideas
will
crown
relates
temperament
give,
philosophic
oft
fingers
until
daring
more
alone
and
that
will
rungs
earthworms
square
again
the
on
two,
in
hand
the
the
where
with
try
artistic
sits
type
a
exactness
more
originality.
his
as
Study
possesses.
the
only
artistic
the
on
confound
indicates
will
is
it
rung;
them,
consequently,
of
famous
man
the
fingers
breadth
rung
she
Genius
fame.
by
artistic
fingers
instance,
;
greater
of
of
ladder
above
The
and,
correctness
the
that
patience
and
rises
Genius.
student,
The
and
variety
as,
the
half
one
the
it
call
;
the
she
but
her
by
endurance
works
by
and
and
;
fingers
square
rising
of
capable
formation
of
are
dazzled
more
39
with
woman
application,
power
Study
dream,
who,
the
her
development
and
be
pointed
the
a
Hand.
"
the
by
often
by
means
instance,
may
with
woman
to
For
falls.
or
Conic
will
the
make
mystical dued sub-
already
"
colors.
the
of
petals
lights
The
the
and
asphodel,
that
shades
the
in
Benedictus
the
across
creep the
hands
that
the
canvas,
soothe
in
poem
the
dying "
all
calm,
will
be
but
detail, with
but
that
detail
calmness
leading that
to
awes
the
one
of
regions with
the
the
sense
spirit of
the
;
all
will
mysterious.
be
VIL
CHAPTER
The known
The
word
very
the
it is
and
hard
a
such
hand
dreamy of
hard
to
the when
the The
long,
want
of
have
to
energy
try
to
Individuals nature.
They in
gentle trust
every
their
with
is
they
are
discipline carried
or
;
away
in
by
battle
in
they
them.
to
they
of
the
rush
strong 40
type so
proach ap-
ation. consider-
in
is
formation and
fingers
pities such
long,
indicate
hands
its
if
they
have
no
and and
idea
by of
others
humanity.
form
they of
;
;
be
to
order,
against Color
they
are
instinctively
how
of
conception
no
idealistic
visionary,
purely
confiding,
easily influenced
are
into
however,
shape
every
They
exact
it, particularly
It
tapering
whose
and
who
taken
all.
present-day
life. the
are
have
of
beauty,
have
beautiful
logical;
they
and
hand
temper;
kind
slender,
part
type
coldness,
the
women
are
of
instinctively
one
the
psychic the
quiet
tical, business-like, or
the
appreciate
who
in
own
hand
fineness
and
life
against
encourage
gold,
and
of
envy
calmness,
for
soul.
of
not
although
men
the
the
rare
the
to
pureness
by
is
very
passion
does
the
considered
with
its
after
But
present-day
a
of
of
In
quest
of
beautiful
very
strength,
hold
manner, one
Its
cattle.
be
our
most
soul.
sought
hundreds
must
fable
old
goddess
the
is
type
civilization
in
the
are
fragile-looking,
and
the
not
are
of
they
the
nails.
almond-shaped
the
is what
seven
appertains
icy purity;
bowed
are
control
is
and
narrow,
type
a
there
that
psychic
and
closeness
that
customs
the
of
daughter
heads
find, yet
psychic
mind
nineteenth-century
such
of
the
by
the
of
purity which
of
the
of
that
war
"
lily whiteness
of
soil, whose
heated
be
may
find:
chastity
the
is
Diood
of
"
one's
the
Psyche
charm to
to
its
in
itself
suggest
maiden
flowers
rare
sons
to
spiritual
more
This
explains
name
unfortunate
most
VI.).
(Plate
seems
toward
Venus
the
but
psychic
find.
to
The
the
the
as
hand
beautiful
most
HAND.
PSYCHIC
THE
prac
ality, punctu-
their
appeals
will, t
The
in the
this nature
joy,
every
every
religion
and
music,
emotion
the
such
feel the
than
ceremony
they
and
magic
of
and
awe
The
them.
finds
of
law
The'
into
utter
often
the
question
inability of fact is
but
recognized, the
sensitive
consider
calls
nature are
often
of
placed to
here
increase
asylums
to our
than
yet
faculties
their
are
more
position
or
of the
of
! too the
often
parents,
is in business. that
nature
early
largely
are
such
; thus
parent
Alas
the
an
for
hereditary laws,
father
dwarfs
to
of matter-
account
stupidity the
and
how
offspring
through
and
because
of
the
examination.
world
feel their
by
the
very
There
grave.
filled
responsibility; and
the do
beauty more
and
a
balance
a
in
good convent
morbid
in the
appreciation of
than
is
the utter
sooner
this
of the
purely
laws the
of
beautiful
; but
;
too
in that
temperaments the
church.
humanity
they
useless
nothing
who, by a
that
melancholy
of such
those endow
and
is
sweetness
or
keenly
so
; there
case
and
indicators
the
life
become
the
is not
goods, build
establish
position
useless, and
and
use
love
forms
and
upon,
all understand
opposite
beautiful, delicate hands,
creation;
of this world's
why.
I would
insanity
is
usually
more
spiritual, All
clairvoyants, because
at
working
crushes
so
not
often
are
ignorance
of the
a
do
direct
the
environment
themselves
into
They
the
the intuitive
impressions
type under
life
Such, however,
consequence.
seek
service, the
sermon.
of
confines
have
sciously uncon-
better.
of these
nature,
the
knowing
in which
way
life,simply
the
the
of
the
every
to
power
easily imposed
are
they
nature,
:
the
for such
parents
Possessors
often
such
that
they
is that
kind, by the
of
of
result
life,without
generally
balance
business
wrongness
with
sensitives,mediums,
as
only
produces
some
the
on
individuals
by producing
of this
truth
or
type is
the
not
music,
sisters.
The
theory of
reaction
logic
dwell
These
strange thing
of balance
temperament
is forced
no
the
by
point
a
the a
is
fact
;
chfldren
of-fact,practical people. a
them
good
and
such
having
of
has
This
impressed
feelings,instincts,and
to
brothers
Parents
color.
more
to
mystery
are
in
a
of
tone
every
true, but
the
seem
attract
they
alive
more
matter-of-fact
treat
;
be
with
being deceived.
highly developed are
the
mystery
bitterlyresent
they
will
is
41
some,
is reflected
people
innately devotional, they
are
; to
way
; it feels what
religious one
In
truth.
highest possible
sorrow, a
Psychic Hand.
tion accumula-
They
they
may
they
are
be
may
be here not
use
less
of that
"
of
instead
worldly
we
they
sense
types
They
river of life One
liliesthrown,
they
"
and
no
ruthless
some
to the
strength; they
A
The we
as
nearing,how
now,
now,
The
has
come.
The
into the
garden
that
weeds
tide
onward
river
is broader
leave
the
for
a
now,
! in the
fame
and
if sorry
Wider The silence
sea, and
and mists
wider
of
mock
hangs like lilies and
a
coldness
flowers
and
on
them, soiled
sees
the tide. how
of its
in
night
river is silent
it bears
the broken All
is
quiet
yet stillcalmer.
and
and
closer and
the
heart. "
nearer
the
as
The
drift
that
expand
we
:
early tide.
calmer
weeds
Again, and
nearer
See, now,
See
thicker
risingtide
the
passing barge
them
youth.
yet it grows,
! those
the stream.
some
hurries
upon
Ah
pity
rent. cur-
rock, trying,as it were,
of
roughness
fall now,
for
quieter,calmer, wider
dream
for the
of that terrible
lower,one
some
of life is done.
day
tempest-tossed
again by
on
moment
and
banks
narrow
of
the wash
or
liliesrest and
past, the
tenderly,as
still it is ! out
is
all is calm. end
the
those
the rush
flowers
the
banks
little
shadow
the
the
sweep
swept
are
the shelter of the stone
from
sea.
views
our
of
rush
them
drags
amid
happy
it is the
for
race
hand, upon
the
clinging to
times
at
have
by
stained,crouching beneath
to look
the
in
Alas
do.
followingpicture,as illustrative
the
drawing
bubbling,babbling,frothy humanity.
of
behind
far
often
too
we
helplessin the onward
so
seem
them
sees
hands
beautiful
as
help them,
and
encourage
us
; as
are
generally left
are
refrain from
I cannot
of such
destroying them
and
let
; therefore
assured
be
may
crushing
fortune.
is
Language of the Hand.
Cheird's
42
whiter.
The
it may
of God
/
river
be
How widens to the
Plate
VII."
THE
MIXED
HAND.
CHAPTER
yill.
"
THE
The the
on
that
hand I
square
is the
the
with
whereas
student's The
is
type
to
different
mixed
called
so
conic,
spatulate,
square,
that
of
type
describe. with
type
have
fingers
true
all to
of
the
mixed
the
of
foundation
chapter In
fingers.
foundation
such
no
the
In
square
be
can
cited
for
guidance.
mixed
as
illustration mixed
the
HAND.
difficult
most
an
gave
however,
case,
hand, the
mixed
MIXED
often
types
philosophic,
hand
one
the
classed
also
fingers spatulate,
one
square,
be
possibly
cannot
psychic;
or
pointed,
one
"
the
because
belong sophic, philo-
one
etc.
The
mixed
hand of
changeability and
people He He
will
will,
of
versatility
in
one
a
Such
others. and
tact.
getting
the
on
never
of
work
classes
not
moment
gas-stove
they
can
remain
are
easy
thereby in
go
determine into
best,
hands
find
They
the
long
they or
feel
a
the
are
different
striking
most
they
however,
talents, choose
the
Their
do
When,
in
to
any
to
politics
write ; but
add
their
is
They
or
drama,
a
as
43
they
head
it
that
the
They
are
the
next,
are
always
on
;
the
in
perhaps,
into stances: circum-
almost
inventive,
ularly particrestless
are
of
ideas
new
they
changing,
quiring re-
culty diffi-
come
to
They
and
work
others;
fond
but
hand,
no
they
adaptability
labor.
so
have
they
generally of
gossip.
brilliancy
scope
like
talents.
or
rules
which
fortune
are
place.
of
with
of
themselves
a
greatest
their
art,
both
to
his
of
little, and
to
versatile
downs
them.
town
line
dispositions
and
relieve
paint
and
adaptable
science,
subject
of
generally
application
strong
peculiarity ups
the
may
so
is
hand
a
the
fairly well,
with
if and
of
be
and
versatility,
such
erratic
conversation,
great.
his
with
man
instrument
be
all
ideas, of
of
clever, but
diplomacy
contact.
all
A
in
some
he
hand
purpose.
brilliant
play will
rarely he
the
circumstances,
be
may
is
invent
and
un-
:
Cheiro's
44
stable
as
belongs
palm for
instance,
the
conic
to
talent
will
and
to
which
so
commonly
a
rarely certain
mixed
When
fail.
they
water,
entire
the
of
hand
is
subject
in
works
remembered
that
much
are
the
spatulate,
of
development
pure
inclined
is
to
individual
on
be
the
it
mixed
the
Hand.
characteristics
the
is
the
must
square,
where
unfortunates
relegated
the
on
of
It
these
type
succeed
purpose,
class
succeed.
fingers
often
the
Language
palmistry.
then
that,
become
possessing
through the
"
Jack
this
when
the
modified
;
as,
philosophic, the
or
would
type
versatility of
type
all
of
of
trades," hand
is
THE
SUPPLE-JOINTED
THUMB.
CLUBBED
FlRM-JOlNTED
THUMB.
^Q1.
(Vto\
ftvtl)
Plate
Viri."
THUMB
THE
THUMBS.
CHAPTER
IX.
THE
The
thumb
is in
only in the
not
The the
by
of In
truth of
study
domain
the
the
every
of
of
thumb
but
cheirognomy, could
palmistry
in
alone,
that
important
so
sense
every
THUMB.
rest
it calls in
also the
upon
its relation
special
its relation
solid
the
to
for
tion, atten-
mancy. cheiro-
to
foundation
given acteristics char-
important
most
subject. thumb
the
age
has
played
conspicuous
a
in
only
not
part,
the
'v
but
hand, of
the
tribes
captors,
of
the
the
thumbs
the
thumb
his
them
and
great
foundation
my
early
life, I
the
the
;
no
palmistry,
the on
stand
Ghost,
gives the
and
first
the
has
that
played the
blessing
by
the
virtue
of the
thumb
fact
indicator
has, by
to
their
important
an
the
rest
first. and
of of
In first 45
its
;
the
the and
a
make
remarks to
on
role,
of
of
God,
position,
the
power
second
the
center
also
lieve be-
of
in
the
tianity Chris-
representing and to
representing the
by
systems
even
will
the
make
position
thumb
the
with
watched
Chinese
that
notice
make
thumb
thumb
the
off
cutting
and
the
The
out.
We
interested
variety the
eloquent
character,
seen
of
have
work
they
interesting
an
have
I
his
mercy.
their
of
appearance
they
base
of
Being
fact, for
India
for
judgment
many
before
but
begging
remarks.
a
dumb
instances
here, again, they
too,
independent
attendant
for
among
brought
this
in
their
their
system
when
and
general
In
what
finger Christ, hand
in
all
and
but
is
is
Israel
of
this
know
they, it
Again,
upright as
for
angle,
matter
thumb
the
children
Gipsies,
hand,
he
fingers,
that
fact
prisoner,
independence,
accordingly.
read
itself.
finger to
position,
foundation,
the God
the
the
they
thumb
of
and
enemies.
calculations
in
will
well-known
a
the
if
his
by
is
It
nations,
their
from
which
his
annals
of
itself.
world
thumb
up
war
in
gipsies
the
Oriental
givirfg
in
their
in
cover
fashion find
also
the
only
point, the
bishop
Greek
church
second
fingers, representing
or
Holy alone
the
Cheird's
46
Language of the Hand.
Trinity; the ordinarypriesthas old ritual of the
made
hy I do
not
wish
tire my
to
well-known
a
be affected
long time other
is at
before there
has
fact,there the
last few
the
corrugationsof the skin thought well
yet
that very
very
interesting pointis the old idea
can
easilybe
child
some
days after birth
it foreshadowed was
would
be delicate
m
fact,
weak-minded
are
so
talkingwith
people
weak
as
not
when
or
the
weak
thumbs,
fingerscovering and
dying.
One
will
it into
an
see
study of ment govern-
practice "
days
if,seven to
reason
very
and
the
man
weak,
or
thing to interesting death
/'
\
after
of the
concealingthe
that,as
that if the
fingers,
birth,the
suspect that the child
asylums
have
same
way, that
inside the
thumb
and
Another
idea,by the
properlydeveloped,
an
the
by
even
self-reliance. It is
well-
a
in London
They believed
keep the
will visit the
to be
is
ease dis-
study of the hand.
traced
"
of truth.
good
was
one
this,which
the English passant.,
of the midwives
congenitalidiots
individuals have
self-confidence of
If
mentally.
fail to notice that all some
stand
still covered,then there
a
Justice is indeed blind.
inclined to
was
a
disease in
prosecutedpalmistsduring the
but great physicaldelicacy,
thumb
cannot
and
good deal
a
be
can
En
the country.
to contain
seen
of
proposed to put
even
in almost
part of
likelihood
a
Gralton has demonsti'ated
of the thumb.
year
every
or
an affection, operation if that brain,and operation
do not believe in the
criminals
arrested
government
amination ex-
an
yet, in face
And
idea,and
an
by the thumb) they have baffled the
by which
of the
of the
by
is likelyto
of such
trace slightest
center
proof of
of the brain.
diseases that
nerve
If it indicate such
Dr. Francis
marvelous
accuracy
the
in
"
center
will indicate such
peoplewho
the
thumb
the thumb
again shown
years
"
patientis affected
the thumb
still are
the
as
tell if the
appeared
patient is saved.
the
and
is
lengthy dissertation
a
of all is that which significant
of specialists
they can
part of the system.
(which
work
the
by paralysisor not, as
is successful
Within
be
must
cross
given by the hundred
; but the most
fact among
performed on
once
known
And, again,in the
baptism the
by going into
could be
in medical
of the thumb
any
find that in
readers
pointswhich
is known
relates to what It is
hand.
the thumb.
importance of this member
the
the whole
use
English church,we
the medical
upon
to
country, he thumbs
poor in
shape. who
woman
thumb watch
has
;
All will
little
the hands
approaches
and
the
The
reason
the
goes,
that if the
"
when
in every
way,
finger.
The
to be
This
versa.
The
and
ideas
in his
the
desire,or
with
man
the
of
firm
palm, nor
yet should
it lie too
and fingers,
yet
they will their
manner
cramped
and toward
to find out
do;
he
a
on
nature
will
cannot
such
his
a
person
one, he will
opponent, but if it be short and for any
formed the
is
deed
long,
the
use
will be
of
appliedby
right angles to
at
It should
have
When
or
it stands
want
the
off the
dependen sheer in-
control such natures to
the
of
;
aggressivein
is well formed, but utter
be
ward slope to-
a
flyto extremes, from manage
a
strength
thumb, therefore,should
thinking about
of violence
use
or
is the
his nature
outspoken,because
thumb, however,is a long
the
lyingdown,
independence of
timorous,but cautious nature; it will be impossible
nervous,
be
the thumb
it indicates the fingers,
what
with
will
stand
them.
lie down
bearing. When the
brutish in his
in the attainment
person
close to the side.
not
vice
and
woman
and they will be inclined opposition,
no
spirit.It denotes to
not
spirit.It will be impossibleto
brook
a
rule,and
observation.
coarse or
The
It should
hand, at rightangles to it,the of
of the
casual
which to that of brute force,
the hand.
upon
is
man
object,such
an
opposed
said,
the base of the first
most
refined,and
thick,short formation.
long and the
while the instincts,
carryingout
of intellectual will, as the
by the
prove
is intellectual and
well-shapedthumb
in the hand
reach
not
short,clumsy, thick-set thumb
animal
has
remarkably true,particularly
the intellectual faculties
more
point the student will
with the
man
stillretains its
that the higher and betteris,therefore,
made
proportionedthe thumb, the
hand, but
D'Arpentigny who
discoverythat
Bell's
yet the thumb, if measured, does deduction
the
on
approach to the human, though well formed
is the nearest
chimpanzee,which
This is
the man."
Sir Charles
follows out
one
drops in
It is
hope of life.
individualizes
thumb
The
and
temporarily the thumb
only faded
has
there is every
and
power
47
loses all power
thumb
reason
Thmnh.
what
he intends If the
reverse.
his intellectual faculties to outwit
thick he will that he
may
cautiouslyawait
meditate.
strikes the happy medium thumb, therefore,
When
of these two
his opportunity a
well-
extremes,
to give him dignityand subjectwill have sufficient independence of spirit
force of character ; he will also be
have
^
strength of
will and
properlycautious
decision.
It therefore
over
his
stands
own :
the
and affairs,
long,well-
Cheird's
48
and
obstinacy
time
immemorial
force
brute
strength of intellectual
denotes
thumb
formed
of the Hand.
Language
; the
small, weak
will ; the
short, thick
weakness
thumb,
of will
thumb,
and
want
of energy. From which
of
significant
are
logic, and
nail
first
The
second
The
third, which
or
is the
thumb
simply
but
is
second
having
all the
the
When
One
allowed
to
the
bend
The
the
of
world
love,
"
Yenus, love.
for
as,
first
the
instance,
subject depends
neither
upon
lange pha-
logic
exactitude
out
his
is
long
nor
and
back, and
forms
stiff,the
in
stiff.
or
the
first
of reason,
the
thumb
side
the
of
the
sufficient
not
supple,
into
phalange
arch
an
man
or
woman
nature.
thumb
of the
study
When
thumb
small, the
be
cannot
is to
first
the
when,
;
bent
notice
is
phalange on
back,
the
trary, con-
by
even
greatest possible
the
opposite peculiarities bear
two
yet has
subject,
ideas.
sensual
or
first,the
the
than
longer
and
carry
supple
thumb
stiff
instance,
is very
and
Scotch,
whereas
Spanish, Italians,and the
consider
that
otherwise, has in
the
individual
the
more
rare
it is found
wherever
the
more
in
do
individual
belongs.
races
influence
with are
bears
influence this
also
of the
numbers
tion rela-
have out
of
the
this the
characteristics
point.
I
am
Latin
English,
Irish,French, I
congregated.
the
supple joint,
Germans,
among
peculiarity, for
the
The
Northern.
Danes, Norwegians, large
these
unconscious to
property the
among
of climatic
theory
peculiarity of
(Plate VIII.) is the distinctive
joint is
for
that
to
is
these
Mount
developed,
interesting things
is
supple
; the
shows
the
parts,
character.
to
to
of the
is much
calmness
joint
thumb
; and
pressure
that
three
will.
passionate
most
first
the
that
phalange
more
of the
whether
races
the
to
prey
third
unequally
phalange
determination
and
a
rule
that
powers
into
will.
boundary
find
upon
the
When
is
great
denotes
phalange
extremely long, we
will
three
divided
been
phalange, logic.
the
When
though
the
has
thumb
will.
The
reason,
the
hardly think
more
inclined
surroundings, prenatal the
that
characteristics
of the
nation
or
to
which
it
The
THE
For
of
the
SUPPLE-JOINTED
extravagant
; these
thought
have
the
sentimental
love
down
in
with
people
a
the
general
practical; they have makes
them
rather
steps where
the
erratic
of
rule
with
strength
they
churches
kind
a
the
control
will
nature
out
they
have ; in
machinery
plain,
are
but
but in
solid;
;
the
to
and
placed.
are
and
the
in slow
by
they the
practical
self
control
are*
out
carry
country
own
stanch;
they have
art
their
;
have
they
solid,strong,
firm
element
Again, they
justice; they
are
large
a
thing
one
and
more
which
they advance
;
;
are
determination
bounds.
to
the
among
place,they
is
secretive
of
sense
first
the
which
home
they
war
undemonstrative,
are
In
stubbornness
own
keen
a
they
of all this is found
they stick
of their
thrown
are
opposed
country
by leaps and
act
of resistless
most ;
and
;
and'
surroundings,
new
of stubborn
kind
a
cautious
more
and
character, and
first mentioned
with
making
would
other
like the
their purpose idea
in
people
both
as
in
THUMB.
joint (Plate VIII.).
stronger are
for
but
time, improvident
society they
in whatever
opposite
and
of
country,
work
new
exact
will
They
success.
and
FIEM-JOINTED
strong
a
to
home
a
the
way,
firm stiff,
kindred
of
easily
THE
in whatever
home
at
hand, is the in
of money,
matters
improvident
"
consequently they quickly make
Again,
only in
not
spendthrifts
quickly
are
practical; they settle
love
the
adaptability of temperament
have
They
circumstances; they
not
THUMB.
person,
life's natural
are
wealth.
of
their
49
example, the supple-jointed thumb, bending from
dication
they
Thumb.
they
;
they
as
and
resistless ; in
in
religion their of
strength
their
own
individuality. THE
The second
and
is
a
or
and V].II.), In was
to
middle
decided
namely, the
its
of
molded
opposite, which in
followed
It
phalange.
indicator
narrow
London, be
PHALANGE.
important characteristic
next
the
SECOND
of the will
or
is full and
It has
I
waist-like
when
later
by this larger and
published
"
my fuller
shape this
that
work,
the I
greatly
Plate
VIII.).
Hand,"
called
of
formations,
(Fig. 1, Plate on
make
(Fig. 3,
appearance
Book
and
varies
two noticeable
clumsy
more
1892,
is the
found
be
temperament. center
thumb
which
attention
to
50
the
formations.
My
critics,I
will
here
the
case.
In
the
first
about
the
that
nature
will
in
with the
When it is
animal
have
natures
have
the of
obstinacy of violence or
such
calm
When
the
indicated
hard,
firm
more
resolute
than
is the
and of
the
the hand
starts, but
of the
the
is soft
be
cannot
object.
an
of the
whereas
the
of
a
a
purpose,
short,flat nail,
of blind
All
Such
of
out
brutal
passion
people,
points together give
and
natural
as
rule,
a
terrible
that
deeds
into
temper,
pletely com-
controlled
more
toward
tendency ;
of
by
reason.
and
energy
in the
determined
the
developed will
well
thumb
ness firm-
with
consequently the subject the
short
his
of
execution
be
ideas
hand.
soft the
of
portion
out
with
heavy,
possess.
temper
more
a
the
of
phalange, consequently, whether
phalange
and
of
power,
carrying
subject, once
is increased
first
purpose
subject with
When fits and
is hard
and
two
flat first
by the thumb
hand
the
of my
that
passion of the subject.
they the
drives
in matters
hand
the
is
be
nature.
is thick
reason
The
mental
should
formation
which
of
some
indication
coarse
formations, the force
clubbed
that
crime.
more
of each
and joint stiff,
purpose
in
the
tact
truth
accomplishment
of
force
ungovernable
whatever
first
and
long, is
of the
in the
born
tact
phalange
the
the
seen
being
appearance,
indicates
nail
or
dominating also
the
thumb
by
to
such
why
by this time
will,and
force
characteristics
indication
sure
a
first
the
waist-like
the
indicates
the
of
brute
development
keeping
has
student
two
indicated
exception
logical way
a
these
by
appearance
taken
was
in
intellectual
more
that
it
show
formation
concerned, shown
waist-like
as
to
place, the
use
development,
fuller,coarser
endeavor
of the Hand. is
the
that
of the
follows
It therefore
as
interest,and
finer
greater development
finer
character
of
my
the
far
statement
deal
good
a
remarks
Language
difference,as
great
aroused
Cheird's
will
subject much
so
be
inclined
more
depended
to
in the
upon
use
his will
by
of his
execution
plans. One
very
through supple
the
or
are
medium
of
bending-back
consciousness
They
striking peculiarity to
that
generally in morals
is
hand
thumb. found
not
is
found
in in
shown
this the
They rarely have with
those
more
does
the
be
play
those
impulsive so
of
the
children
important
a
of
study case
the
of
same
people
keenness
straight, firm of
part.
nature
human
nature with
tde
of moral
development. in
i^hom
science con-
SQUARE.
WITH
SMOOTH
JOINTS.
POINTED,
WITH
Plate
SMOOTH
iX.
JOINTS.
DEVELOPED
JOINTS,
CHAPTER
THE
The
development
figuratively of
the
be
to
reasoning
but
not
fingers, without a
in in
accurate
the
than
be
in
in
insisting
the
who
in
families
how
all
details
little
kind do
the
others.
often
little
other
is found
;
of
nothing for
in
has
the
smooth
but
In
the
the
or
to
as
IX.)
careless
in
the
would
;
be
very
mistakes
pointed
they
dress, could
affairs
of
the
knotty They
this
in
51
the
the
increase
found
cannot
ance, appear-
keep
not
particular
very
occur,
developed
sometimes child
it may and
and be
also
joints
do
among
running
slightly
observed, how
who
men
found but
joints
diminution
or
among
developed
or
are
one
animals
kind
with
often
as
appearing of
with
do
are
work.
breeding
people
of
case
joints
mental
peculiarities
he
make
Plate
business
places, although
labor
generations,
person
nothing
manual
in
be
people.
in
Work
a
also
are
diagnose
may
With
joints.
(Fig. 2,
they
;
will
to
square
conclusions
at
he
apt
more
developed
intuitive
kind
any
is
using
modified,
man
talented
really
man
a
with
purely
their
in
man
clined in-
more
with
doctor
a
is
much
jump
Such
are,
tions indica-
without
very
will
IX.),
be
such
Such
things order
the
is
a
subject.
joints he
scientific
a
them.
the
conclusions
this
Plate
for
type
matters.
IX.).
(Fig. 1,
but
of
hands
joints
important
are
is
fingers
The
of
at
Consequently
if
;
are
arrive
square
square
joints
formations
men
in
the
opposite
hardest
way
and
smooth
as
the
hand.
temperament
to
account
to
conclusions, with
upon
(Fig. 3, Plate such
same
little
and
The
of
the
with
and papers
always
smooth
troubled
and
joints able
the
of
known
of
joints
phalanges,
the
are
thought
smooth
his
as
With
means
man
the
hands
what
the
reading
of
eradicated.
with
being
patient
as
has
faculties.
any
but
of
the
between well
in
impulsive
the
by
subject
FINGEKS.
THE
the
in
walls
peculiarities
When
OF
non-developmeDt
or
speaking,
the
JOINTS
consideration
important
very
X.
en
found
passant,
significant
they
Cheird's
52
when
Thus,
are.
"
the
case
follow in
be, all
may
"
if
that
who
children
things
little fact
well-known
that
how
considers
one
these
study
will
Language
a
wonderful
with
second,
slight
some
birth
or
exhibit
instance,
child
a
he
there first
her
by
fourth
even
the
heredity,
of
For
to
third,
way
laws
interest.
gives
the
the
are
gi'eater
woman
by
Hand.
the
of
is band, hus-
husband, of
peculiarities
the
as
first
husband.
developed
The show
they
not
much
how
care
hands
philosophic
an
well,
notice
cool
be
detail
in
the
calm.
same
thing little
things,
Men
with
these
of
dress
their
makes
in
class
The the
even
important
in
though developed
thev
the
work.
place
of
out
with
connection that
with
over
matters
in
the does
pursuit,
reason
connection
slightest
worry
in
is
details
out
with
man
a
case,
that
follows
scientific
some
working It
the
and
instinct
of
whose
joints
mark
which
breadth
and to
seems
that
and
force.
speaking, and
stop
them
to
tide
analyzing.
of
the
true
walls of
or
impulse,
the of
their
without
developed the
Outside
because
to
In in
accurate
of
than
more
harmonize.
not
because
come
these
them
and
literature,
nature,
thoughtful,
do
careful
are
in
deduction
irritate
costume
dramatic
human
will
nothing
and
such
best
about
in
this
it
joints
have
blend
color
and
"
colors
lack
engaged.
They
feminine
almost
is
room.
will
they
matters
a
spends
smooth,
In
engaged in
he
the
work.
and
joints,
exact
joints
of
arrangement
he
so
these
of
owners
time
which
in
science
any
developed
and
hand
square
of
opposite
method
in
exactness
more
the
being
joints
dramatic
work,
delineation
science,
of
they
extraordinary
instinct
and
effort.
We
joints and
between
make
the
character,
power
knowledge
make
nature
their
analyzing
of
hulnanity draw
phalanges, more
but
of
therefore the
with
people
perhaps
must
the
woman
a
accompany
the
tively figura-
observant^
CHAPTER
XL
THE
Fingers which
they
the
and
have
of
of
small
fingers
things
the
of
length
conventionalities in
take
of
the
They
the
palm
society
not
care
;
they
are
decoration
to
of
of
nations,
or
in
matters
of
themselves
worry
little
over
in
a
the
dress, thingS;
affectation.
en
do
exact
are
impulsive.
everything
the
"
management
people
toward
and
in
everything
they
;
leaning
a
quick
hastily.
too
in
servants,
at-tentions
are
they
;
in
detail
Long-fingered
occasionally
Short little
love
picture.
a
notice
to
or
treatment
of
painting quick
give
fingers
in
of
short, irrespective
long
belong.
Long room,
either
are
FINGERS.
They
masse
they
;
much
so
generally
about
in
quick
troubled
be
cannot
jump
and
at
clusions con-
for
or
appearances,
thought,
about
and
hasty
the spoken out-
speech. thick
Fingers
and
clumsy,
well
as
short,
as
more
are
cruel
less
or
and
selfish. When
they
the
denote
fingers
When
they
Naturally crooked,
curved
caution
and
in
inward,
naturally
or
and
reserve,
denote a
small
it denotes to
When
evil a
bend
affable
company,
crooked,
and
supple
very
distorted,
they When
pain
are
charming
found
and
very
contracted, indicate
often
a
spirit.
cowardly
nature
of
excess
an
stiff
are
distorted, nature
;
and
on
a
or
pad
sensitiveness
extreme
fingers
good
is
like
clever, but
twisted
quizzical, irritating fleshy ball
back
hand
on
they
an
curious
and
bad
hand
a
are
tell
arch, they
of
inquisitive. indicate
rarely
a
but
found,
fingers
are
thick
and
found
and
puffy 53
if
person.
tact
the
on
through
inside the
of
the
dread
nail of
lange, pha-
causing
others. the
a
at
the
base, the
subject
considers
Cheito's
54
his
waist, it shows
a
with
When,
the
second, it indicates the
between
the
as
this
When
of
the
fingers
the
at
every
so
base and
way,
shaped
are
fastidiousness
is very
rule
TO
short
domineer.
and
Such
politicians.
was
ONE
is wide
space
ANOTHER,
again,
;
It is to
a
the
it
others, it is
on
be
in
found
as
great hands
the
literallyspeaking,
man,
finger (the finger
of
reverse
it denotes
that
gambles
with
strong
all
artistic
for
"
will
lay
things
"
instincts
or
by the
dramatic
appeal
to
preacher. or
wealth
glory.
money, and
spatulate termination
actor, orator,
and
for
looks
rule
his hand
on
;
at
world
one
man,
the
"
first
heavy, it
and
square
frivolity.
Sun) is and
nearly
honor
of the
life in the
danger
but
"
its
thi'ough
light of one
length
same
excessively long, almost
and life,
artistic to the
equal a
lottery, one withal
endowed
talents.
for this
It indicates
sensational
If
one
Saturn) is
of the
it indicates
second,
"
second.
callousness
that
nature
the
nature.
ambition desire
the
with
"
this
morbid
almost
finger (the finger
great
of
the
as
the
power,
to
first,it denotes a
for
long
as
being fully equal
the
third
leanings, and
desire
striking example
a
second
When
When
RELATION
the
first and
of action.
independence
IN
the
finger, is excessively long, it denotes
disposition, a
pointed,
The
When
thought.
of
finger is abnormal, namely,
When
second,
between
seen
on.
index
to
is
space
it indicates
hands
deeply thoughtful,
a
wide
a
FINGEES
some
and
abnormal,
finger was
the
on
as
Napoleon
creed.
THE
first,or
well
as
pride
shows
the
ing, eating, drink-
in
luxury
law."
the When
as
OF
tendency
a
priests
fourth,
finger
the
pride, and
and
second,
When
great
desire
disposition in
unselfish
fingers open,
LENGTH
first
The
down
will
contrary,
great independence
third
THE
of
the
on
an
; he
of others
of food.
in matters
long
that
living. When,
and like
before
comfort
own
of the Hand.
Language
power,
third that the
finger is his
an
artistic
excellent
gifts are
breadth, the
color
sign
for
the
strengthened necessary
to
audiences. the
fourth, or
little
finger,is well-shaped
and
long, it
acts
as
a
kind
The of balance in the hand influence it shows
on
in which
any
or
he will
k
very of
one
apply facts
his notice.
his fourth
almost
long "
and
philosopher:one
knowledge
Mr. Gladstone
is
a
to
who
speaking,and can
converse
peopleby the
the treatment
good example
fingernearlyreached the nail
subjectto
the nail of the third
writing and
interests and commands and
of the
the power
reachingto
expressionin both who
55
thumb, and indicates
less the savant
subject;
brought under his hand
When
great power
is more
owner
ease
others.
to the
Fingers.
of
"
the
with manner
anything
of this class;on
of the third.
XII.
CHAPTER
THE
A
hard,
THTN,
troubled
thick
very
When
the
not
and
luxury, A
SMALL
HANDS.
and
timidity,
a
even
other
or
If
on
portion
of
it inclines
domestic of
worrying,
nervous,
When
the
business,
money,
When
the
proved
disposition.
proportion
it
dicates fingers, it in-
the
to
intellect.
of
flabby,
be
to
denotes
love
indolence,
than
if the
of
that
sign as
has
hollow
rule,
a
such
;
inclines
lot
of
mentioned
been
not
people
the
to
to
more
one
another.
to
life, it promises of
rest
fall,
the
that
namely,
of
unfortunate
an
peculiarity
a
than
line
and
disappointment
the
hand
denotes
the
line
of
fate,
it tells
of
disappointment
ill-health,
trouble
it is
in
added
an
trouble.
hollow
under
comes
and
under
of
sensuality.
noticed
hand
and
in
quickness
and
soft
subject,
the
and
delicacy
and
and
disappointments
the
to
affairs,
energy,
been
well
as
works
elastic,
but
more
have
sensuality
soft, shows
toward
has
palm
I
and and
thick,
tendency
a
have
mortals.
mind,
very
hollow
usually
full
is firm
palm of
When
sign
AND
indicates
palm
palm,
evenness
line
dry
LARGE
nature.
A
in
AND
PALM,
worldly
the
line
of
in
misfortune
it indicates
affairs.
heart
in
the
closest
affections. I
do
hold
not
longer
than
never,
properly this
The
erroneous
the
to
be
with
palm
and
show
to
speaking, the
that
statement
other
the
exceeded with
case
in
works
every
the case
the
on
subject,
intellectual in
square,
the
by
56
the
must
the
be
and
fingers
palm
fingers.
spatulate,
fingers
misleading.
The
nature.
length
that
How
of
the
hand
can
we
philosophic
longer
than
must
the
be is pect ex-
types? palm
is
CHAPTER
XIII.
THE
Paeticularly nails
the
Often have
a
healih
side In
in
suffered
seconds
few
the
the
first
nails,
the
manicure
degree
Nails
care
are
at
nails
they
ease
every
morning.
divided
into
four
I
broken
distinct
a
classes
or
,"
will
in
the
of
study. their
type
polished have
may
broad
long,
this
or
his
what
treat
affect
mechanic
short,
very
by
in
great
nails
first
work
by
instance,
have
will
alter
not
the
shown
as
with
nails
of
ject, sub-
men
forgets,
moment
traits.
does
are
For may
the
disposition,
the
unchanged.
gentleman
them
of
the
whether
:
remains
type
and
the
of
Medical
the
examination
an
hereditary
then
question,
for
of
study
the
affect
to
guides.
this
or
but
;
important
place,
slightest the
care,
the
from
likely
sure
up
know,
not
died
or
disclose
of
does
diseases
remarkably
lately taken
have
patient
a
be
to
the
and
health,
found
Paris
and
interest.
parents
be
will
London
both
regards
as
NAILS.
by long he
though
ones,
short,
broad,
and
narrow.
LONG
Long
Very
type.
trouble, the
nails
top
Plate
this
back
is
the
are
liable
more
across
aggravated
if
the the
strength
to
nails
if the
and
finger
physical
great
accentuated
more
even
such
persons
more
toward
is
tendency
nailed
long
and
indicate
never
NAILS.
suffer much
are
finger
nail
is
from
short,
chest
and
curved,
both
Plate
X.).
(Fig. 7, fluted
the
as
ribbed
or
broad
lung from This
(Fig. 10,
X.). This
type
tis, asthma, Long circulation
of
and
nails,
nail, when bronchial very
proceeding
shorter,
indicates
affections
wide from
at
the
(Plate and
top
ill-health
or
58
throat
trouble,
such
as
laryngy-
X.). bluish nervous
in
appearance,
prostration.
denote This
bad is very
THROAT
DELICACY
OF
BRONCHIAL.
BRONCHIAL.
AFFECTIONS.
LUNGS.
CONSUMPTIVE
Plate
X."
NAILS.
TENDENCIES
2.
I.
SHOVHNG
BAD
CIRCULATION
AND
TENDENCY
TOWARDS
7.
SHOWING
HEART
9.
TENDENCY
Plate
TOWARDS
XL"
NAILS.
PARALYSIS.
DISEASE.
la
The
the
often
with
case
and
twenty-one
hands
the
of
and
forty-two
Nails.
between
women
toward
small
heart
Short
disease
indicate
Short
nails,very
flat.
as
Plate
of
base, with
there
is
little
or
no
tendency
a
are
moons,
heart,and, generally speaking, heart
sure
disease.
circulation.
good
sunken,
into
it were,
as
inclined
flat and
to
is the
latter
the
case
out
curve
paralysis, particularly
If the
the
flesh
the
at
base,
if
they
white
are
is
disease
at the
lift up
or
edges, brittle
and
advanced
more
are
as
(Fig. 9,
XI.). Short-nailed
and
which
(Plate XI.).
nails,very
forerunners
in
families
the
at
flat and
diseases
nerve
flat
of the
moons
Short
well
and
action
Large
show
NAILS.
in whole
run
and
fourteen
of
ages
(Plate XI.).
nails,thin
signs of weak
the
nails
the
forty-seven.
SHORT
Short,
59
people
diseases
from
have
affecting
greater tendency
a
the
and
trunk
suffer
to
than
limbs
lower
heart
from
trouble
with
those
long
nails.
Long-nailed system
in the
"
Natural
a
thorough Thin
very
the
the
on
nails
are
nails
and
flecked
with
of
a
half
upper
highly strung
spots the whole
long,
if
high
delicate and
much
health
of
the
ment tempera-
nervous
system
nervous
and
curved,
requires
of
want
threaten
Nails
energy.
spinal trouble, and
great strength.
very
AS
SHOWN
BY
disposition,long-nailed individuals than
those
with
short
nails.
are
They
THE
NAILS.
less are
critical and
also
calmer
more
in
sionable impresand
temper
gentle. Long
their
sigus
are
DISPOSITION
more
the
head..
nails,if small, denote
promise
In
in
trouble
to
overhauling.
narrow
never
liable
more
lungs, chest, and
spots
5 when
are
persons
owners
nails show take
more
resignation
things easily. Such
and
calmness
nails indicate
in every
way.
As
a
rule
great ideality; they also
Cheird's
60
show
artistic
an
all
and
fine
facts
relating
things contact
;
keener
as
a
Hand.
rule,
fond
are
however,
facts
in
the
of
ing, paint-
poetry, rather
are
face,
inclined
particularly
of
and
humor
in
sharp
and
keener
in
they
and
of
the
and
temper,
are
with
if
will
which
opposition
individuals
make
their
judgment
hold
;
till
out
ridiculous
or
less
they
those
are,
visionary
;
long-nailed
skeptical
of
critics
;
well,
fond
they
have
as
last
very
into
come
best
the
of
even
the
to
they
the
the
than
more
critical,
in
facts,
Short-nailed
and
extremely
are
everything
reason,
argument
an
contrary,
analyze
logic,
to
the
on
they
sharper in
sense
they
;
things
are
they
do
understand.
When
the
a
broader
are
tendency
than
to
they and
worry
are
long,
indicate
they
meddle
and
indicate
the
to
a
pugnacious
interfere
with
other
business.
people's Nails
I
nails
also
disposition,
illness
the
persons,
looking
long-nailed.
the
and
debate,
not
from
self;
incline
quicker,
are
quick
shrink
to
they of
qualities
a
Long-nailed
individuals,
Short-nailed
of
owners,
of
distasteful.
are
they
their
arts.
and
visionary,
be
to
and
nature,
the
Language
short
do
not
through
the
by
any
pay
nervous
habit
attention
strain.
of
biting
to
the
spots
on
the
worrying
nervous,
nails,
except
as
perament. tem-
a
sign
of
Cheiro's
62
-if
hair, as
than
rule
a
It is
amount.
the
having
the
the
quicker
force
to
of
action
coarser
the
the
as
larger,
greater
tity quan-
the
greatest
dark
people,
the
but
the
consequently
are
either
than
quality
or
have
natures
pigment
in
coarser
being
electricity, they
to
rouse
is
shows
these
much
as
electricity, not
these
hair
ends,
and
the
so
force
of
naturally
black, brown,
in
any
when
it
such
high
is
consider,
the
a
keen
theory
of
in
way
this
sight
of
the
give ashamed
deal
us
to
air, all
the do
color
of
fact
that
I in
even
in
to
seek
the
it, even
found
Book
and
as
in
in the
reaction in
a
strain, and
a
few
quently conse-
temperament the
never,
to
the
work
knowledge things.
of
nothing is
power,
under
has,
country and
I
liance bril-
nerve-stimulating press
forward This
amusement.
those is
fact,
live
or
to
in
think,
the
brightness
women
and
attention
Nature
the
knowledge,
my
for
the
peculiar and
men
in
;
of
I
than,
much,
so
climate
The
hair
accounts
through
both
little
outer
same
tubes; white
white
theory
go
its
of
such
with
winter,
it to
commend
the
its color.
cause
has
these
en
into
from
end
on
becomes
from
at
It is the
stands
often
hair
This
their
to
often
or
forced
white
white.
the
Americans.
hair
knowledge,
hair
people
competition, the
becomes
through
be
with
dissipation,
or
longer
no
grow
rushing
world. no
combine
of
spirit
before.
the
do
as
atmosphere,
quality of the with
the
to
recover
to
excess
is
pigment
commence
resume
are
that
pressure,
of
in
country
great
hair
the
remembered
a
and
system
people
more
other
the
can
will
rarely
America
fluid
the
the
"
by
large quantities, is nearly
tube
or
grief
or
immediately,
rarely
they
hair
electric
in
sets
very
In
shock
nervous
Very
entire
enfeebled such
itself;
system
consequently
sudden
a
the
hours.
and
in
generated
the
till the
on,
of
case
being by
tubes,
becomes
gets old, or
system
tirely consumed
be
and
supply
and
have
they
which
of
and
Now,
therefore
and
wider,
escapes,
that
blond.
or
hair
red
that
blond.
When
not
that
greater
will find
we
black, brown,
not
excitable
more"
hair,
is,consequently,
electricity
of
or
either
itself
tube
the
examine
will
we
of the Hand.
Language
so
let
been who
small us
put forward do that
not
lose
it may
therefore
not
Plate
XII."
THE
MOUNTS
OF
THE
HAND.
/
CHAPTER
THE
In hand
work
my
I
cheirognomy.
to
thicker
and known
labor
the
which
characteristics, and
control
cheiromants I
here
must
there
which
hand, I
it
use
giving have
martial
such
names
the
student
call
to
were
of
so
long
so
these
that
on,
by
mounts
(Plate of
man
Mount
XII.). or
blood-vessels
of
Venus
When
in
the
mount
hand,
the
I wish
such
names
their
mere
mention
MOUNT
cov\prsone
it ia
fpaimar
the
of
quicker
qualities
muf
and
the
so
t
ployment em-
than
more
tbv'
the
Mars,
as
them,
of
way
if
forth.
/
found
of
I
but
Consequently,
These
matters
VENUS.
large
a
to
that
two;
study
minds
our
first, second,
\levelopment
this
as
recalls
simplify
OF
deny
the
describe.
to
in
with
abnormally
not
This
woman.
is the
etc., simply
etc.,
relation
in
itself.
in
by
use
Mars,
"
with
which
the
Venus,
between
one
laws
moment
one
are
constitutional
sense
any
for
not
complete
Saturn,
as
of
conjunction
way
qualities
numbers,
.THE
The
it in
will, therefore,
terms
the
the
do
what
regards
Mount in
great
every
Mars,
idea
an
and
in
be
to
Venus,
as
associated
of
I
I hold
I
very
consider
to
the
rougher
a
hereditary As
names
Palmistry. a
the
that,
state
with
show
the
devoted
decrease
or
turn,
races.
these
use
and
necessary
nature,
not
their
as
hand
the
work
I must
point,
with
XII.)
this
of
depress
by
of
such
"
study
been
do
connection
a
think
not
I
Astrological
as
be
may
that
in
caused
names,
this
not
again,
(Plate
section
coating
it does
intermingling
old-time
hand
of
of
MEANINGS.
the
the
in
effect
doubtless
the
the
state
is known
what
do
of
the
which,
are
of
them
skin, yet
and
THEIE
consideration
have
of
AND
mounts
of
the
will
mounts,
the
treat
in
develo{)ment
as
govern
I
Again,
manual
although
class
always
therefore
itself, and
POSITION
THEIE
MOUNTS,
XV.
the
at
the
favorable
a
largest
ai^ch.
of
base
sign and
Hence,
on
most
if the
the
thumb
the
hand
important Mount
of
Cheiro's
64
be
Mount
of Venus The
developed,it indicates strong
well
Venus
Language of the
Hand.
and
robust
A
health.
small
health
betrayspoor
and,consequently,less passion. of Venus, abnormally large, indicates a violent passion for
Mount
the
oppositesex. This
denotes
mount
please,love
desire to
music, and
affection, sympathy
and
attraction of the
the
developed
attempted,and desire
it shows
of
study
OF
is found
color,and
melody in
other.
JUPITEK.
at
the base
of the firstfinger(Plate
in
ambition,pride,enthusiasm
MOUNT
at the base
OF
anything
of the
SATUKN.
second
finger(PlateXII.),and denotes
solitude, quietness,prudence, earnestness
of somber
of
a
for power.
THE
love
to the
sex
is the raised formation
This mount
This
one
others,benevolence,
beauty,love
MOUNT
THE
XII.). When
of
worship
toward
things,and
in
work, proneness
appreciationof music
of
sacred
a
to
the
classical
or
order. THE
This mount Mount
of
is found
MOUNT
at the base
artistic callir
all
worL^
-yrace
love
of mind
THE
Xn.).
mount
of this
It denotes
SUN
well
na.-ae
of and
not
or
one
follows
OF
is found
subject,if unfavorable,to
i
a
purely
thought.
MERCUKY.
at t\
base
of the fourth
qualitiesof life "
love of
finger(Plate
change, travel,
and expression.If the rest of excitement,wit,quicknessof tli("ught is favorable, to the qualities will redound indieatu'^ by^j^|^^ount of the
siastic enthu-
an
native painting,poetry,literature,and aU imagi-
MOUNT
all the mercurial
and is also called the finger,
developed it indicates
whether thingsbeautiful,
It denotes
'.
THE
of the third
Apollo (PlateXII.). "When
appreciationof
The
OF
his mi
the hand the
good
The
Mounts,
Position
their
THE
There but
Jupiter, XII.).
two
are
the
The
Luna
lies
of
this
of
life, lying
resistance
fighting
Mars
and
directly
indicates
It for
of
Mount
the
Luna
great
of
Mount
martial
of
spirit,
Mount
of
Venus
but
(Plate
when
the
and
Mercury
self-control,
courage,
MOUNT
the
on
the
refinement,
romantic,
the
large,
Mount
of
resignation,
and
wrong.
lies
opposite
the
beneath
the
to
next
Mount
passive
against
first
disposition.
the
denotes
the
;
courage,
THE
The
name
65
Meanings.
MAES.
OP
of
between
It
XII.)..
(Plate
MOUNT
active
first, gives
second
strength
line
quarrelsome,
very
a
the
inside
This,
shows
mounts
their
and
OF
side
Mount
of
of
and
a
the
Venus
love
imagination,
ideality,
LUNA.
hand
beneath
(Plate
XII.).
of
fondness
the
beautiful for
Mount
scenery,
and
poetry
of
taste
a
imaginative
literature.
THE
When blended
its
and the
of
of
Sun the
if
solemn
in
will lean
individual.
blend to
Mercury,
TOWARD
another,
one
ONE
ANOTHER.
the
qualities
of
each
are
unison. lean its
"
toward
with
MOUNTS
toward
Saturn
things incline
THE
lean
developed
Saturn
ideas
OF
mounts
example,
love
If
the and
For
LEANING
the the art
will
of
Mount
artistic
and
sadness,
prudence,
it
Jupiter,
toward
taste
influence
the of
Sun, the
the
gives its
solemn
business
and or
if
some
of
tendency.
religious
Saturn's
subject,
latter
the
the
scientific
thoughts Mount nature
of
CHAPTER
THE
different
That is
nations
"
here
quote
The
:
if certain different
laws
The the
entire
of
pureness
individuality
and
the
with
civilized
among
inhabitants
We
latitudes,
of
Iceland,
types be
for
as,
which
I would
world."
fore, There-
marriage, that
also
they different
etc.,
it does
produce
istics. character-
naturally
must not
the
destroy
doubted.
it is
this
and
if
rarely
type
instance,
Lapland,
the
different
HAND.
hand, find
a
races
of
but
;
ELEMENTARY
elementary
nations.
cold
extremely
the
different
by
moment
a
shapes
illustrative
as
intermixing
for
cannot
in
of
statement
dewdrop
types
different
characteristic
are
familiar
a
a
bodies
THE
Starting
is
different
intermingling
bodies
rounds
and
hands
and
There
which
produce
of
shapes
modify
law
NATIONS.
OF
faces
fact.
well-known
a
HANDS
of
types
XVI.
the
among
northern
in
its
primitive
of
portion
purity in
races
Esquimaux
the
among
the
found
ever
the
and
and
Russia
Siberia. Such the
pain and
people
body as
keenly
brutal
in
sufficient
slightly and
their
high
;
they
Thej^
form
the
ai^e
devoid
are
them
make
;
development,
types.
desires to
emotionless
of
state
other
developed
more
THE
Germans,
a
the
as
mentality
civilized
The
in
not
are
and
phlegmatic
are
distinct
from
elementary
hand
they
animal
and
aspirations, the
not
in
feel
instincts have
only
creation.
brute
is found
do
their
in
of
centers
nerve
therefore
more
of
the
even
In
a
southern
more
nations.
SQUARE
square
Dutch,
hand,
HAND
AND
generally
English,
and
THE
REPRESENTED
NATIONS
speaking,
is found
Scotch.
The 66
chief
BY
among
tht".
characte.
IT.
Swedes, istics
Danes, which
it
Cheird's
68
swallowed
extent
that the
of
sense
the
spatulate hand,
It is the also
be
are
applied
They
solidityof
speculation shift
they
from
it is to
thing
her
for or
the
for
the
of ;
the
this
work
come
from
love
the other
risk
and
changeability
that
such
in
"
are
faults,
world
the
must
science,
ligion, re-
evolution
the
out
they
;
with
discoveries
and
hands
authority.
moment
but, even
like
can
utilize
may
is their
fault
for
they
;
lessness. rest-
terms
than
ideas
they
in
The
Spatulate
law, less
;
mood
to
individual.
originality,and
them
earnestness
in years
in
standpoint
the
their
square
chief
with
cosmopolitan
discoverer, which
upon
inventions
must
of
of
quickness
their
a
mechanics.
many-talented
the
which
the
in
unbiased
an
of energy,
and
role
important
be
to
that
hand
improve
to
and
for
ideas,
materialism
the
in their
fads, enigmas
new
take
little respect
another
to
people many-sided
a
the
have
try
claim
I would
versatile,and
are
one
in their
fanatics
look
they
;
I may
exemplified by
as
will
they
As
the
played
science, art, or
from
more
mind
explorer
in
they
;
work
earnest
ideas,but
men's
discoveries
to
inventors,
are
the
my
as
acteristics and, consequently, the char-
hand,
therefore
can
before, is
of
hand
to
nations
of
conventional
never
I
word,
I stated
as
This
country.
great
character
reading the
has
represents,
that
of
history
every
it
others.
all the
up
of the Hand.
Language
of
humanity. PSYCHIC.
THE
This
peculiar type is
it is evolved
sometimes
enthusiastic. an
be
Yet
evolution seven
of
earth, earthy, distinct
giving shadow
to
suited
mankind
that
we
may to
may
of of
find we
into
the
which
the find
plane
it is that
its
they
in all and for
the
material
is but
substance, that
for
"
found
formed to
Certain
that
of
rough things
the
and
wisdom
are
of
thus that
usage
of
be
this
life ; their
the
of
fitness
may of the
make
and
as
their
so
their
may
; thus
that the
no
up
that,
place
speculation
be
may
not
world,
mankind
;
most
there
are
they
;
It may
in the sees
which
in
all.
reflection
the
itself;it
owners
human
kindred
or
among
in
enthusiastic
practical nor
heaven
particular country
any
practical,sometimes
most
five.
are
not
are
to
types, reaching
but
not
are
gives rise things.
yet
nor
hands
thoughts
among
all the
community,
beautiful
the
is it neither
instead
senses
confined
not
be in
in the
this type use
of all
PART
OHEIEOMA]^OY.
II."
I.
CHAPTER
A
Befoee wish
to
whb
may In
the
certain
that
its
graphic
from,
I may
information have
say,
the
who
proved whatever
conscientious
there read
are
the
study
four desire
book
of
fascinating or
nature
and
that
will
make
before
confined
to
learn,I
to
impress
upon
patience. To
be
there is no repay
the
study time
be
there
able
to more
and
make
to
with
so
eularge
to
the
two
labor
spent
alike,so
is to be
arduous, there upon
is
I
necessity
natures
hand
I
point
one
is the
this
that
knowledge The
of
tains con-
presenting
the student
read
tails the de-
even
this book
in
the
no
he
the set theories
to
correct.
are
the
enthusiasm, but later
earth, and
do
compelled
and
information
I make
As
been
uninteresting. This
myself
the
reader
thoroughly
a
the reader
endeavored
of
casual
this work
and
dry
I
cheiromancy,
the
to
as
HAND.
of
palmistry, I have
I have not
THE
glance through this book.
of his
corners
to
alike. "
with
as
statements
hands
two
no
desire
to
gathered whatever
would, however, earnestlydesire for
well
to
commencement
I have
; I have
those
to
the
advantages,
particularschool
study
considered
be
possible.
as
in this
study prominently
may
OF
intricate details
student, as
connected
during
resent
the
EEADING
THE
more
earnest
my
of the
points
will,I think, see
any
to
in all matters
details
may
as
words
sufficient interest
guide
TO
explain the
to
few
a
KEFEEENCE
first place,in
the
student
IN
proceed
take
bring
on
I
address
reliable to
EEMAEKS
FEW
none
it with
able
to
more
more
interest. To
do
this
of writers
study justice,I on
this
and
cannot
subject,that
it is 69
will not an
easy
pretend, as
do
the
rality gene-
matter, by following this,
Clieird's
70
other
the
that, or
"
of the
map
read
the
hand
e
able
On
the
contrary,
by
the
particular type
^
head
to
a
on
the
to
concise
on
lie
that
connection
will
in
be
Now of
hope be
can
have,
found
of
in
or
to
correct, and of
heights for
that
have
that
out
reason
with
the
the
light
of
than
without still,
knowledge.
The
point
writers
treating
chief
lies in of each
the
of
fact
that
opinion,
such
is at
a
that
and
point
in
the
near
I class
the
new
every the
across
some
truth, and
the
and
my
reason
various
lines
medical
physician
believe
attain
greater
under
who
sands
work
of
which
by following will
according
hope, and,
and
are
teacher
you
ground
teachings
always
than
shifting
take
say,
of this
of students
to
will
we
can
particular branch
reason
follows
we
and
body
faith, without
last without
between
existed
of any
most
mentality
that
celebrated
foundation
I would
concentration
instance, a
which
illustration
has
who, shifting their
those
particular point.
for
pursuit
who
least
own
your
difference
ful use-
against palmistry.
What
which
have
individual
at
this
but
opinion
the
better
study.
in the
we
upon
believe
same
ties difficul-
opinions,
No
will-o'-the-wisp,flits
to
succeed
different
words
the
which
the
fancy, find themselves
every
of
of
only through
scientific
Particularly in palmistry,
good
likely to
more
like
it is
should,
by building than
in
we
teachings
knowledge
fancy.
as
of
clear
as
every
argument
an
subject.
any
in
say,
pupils, that the
on
as
of
divergency
more
therefore,
his
moment,
a
human you
have,
used
consensus
well
of
difference
divergency of opinion
the
religion,
take
study,
in
the
enormous
explanation
is the
mind
that
the
the
line
written
point
every
in mind
clear
is often
truth
as
must,
used
the
than
can
I
men! once
reach
to
will exist
and
make
bear
a
in
borne
from
I have
on.
is modified
sloping
meaning
so
mentality.
exception,
instance, a
to
study.
remember
minds,
and
to
must
making
which
must
we
different
ever
and
with,
met
student
be
to
for
as,
guide,
a
only interesting to the reader,
it not
intricate
an
point
next
belongs,
as
student's
the
line, without
endeavored
of
way
of
completely different
a
have the
such
it
making
I
the
with
The
of
possible, but
as
every
set rules
some
exercise
philosophic type,
or
student.
that
has
conic
object
any
which
to
Hand.
by taking
or
without
show
hand
a
the
with
book
shall
square
line
sloping
I
hand,
"
the
of
Language
those different
of
be to
worse
other
heads,
A
This
will
also
but
class
of
that
affects
This
plan in
all
regards
changes
and
mentality, have
;
the
to
found
so
be
to
with
to
the
I
with
on
the
teachers
depart
from
the
line
other
every
most
those
of
accurate, whose
as
and
of
head
ideas
we
the
it,
the
to
as
well
that
govern
life,
line,
student,
the
hold
which
length
71
Hand.
for
I
instance,
influences
regard
the
of
puzzling
less
For
natural
climate. and
accordance
life,
Beading
and
easy
reason.
affects
strength
the
to
more
with
that
country
I
only
not
accordance
to
Reference
in
found
in
more
as
more
Remarks
be
relates
life
of
Feiv
as
all
to
will
be
the
simplest,
have
its
to
important
related
as
line
later.
seen
and
to
reason
every
respect. As
a
theory
the
regards which
dividing
nature.
dealing
has
of I
with
I
dates,
will
time
been
the
into
illustrate
and
"
considered
life
this dates.
the
sevens,
when
at
in
I
usual
least
to
with that
instead
and
interesting
accordance
come
and
formula,
the
portion
advance
reasonable,"
in
teachings
of
of
this
work
CHAPTER
THE
There
The
(Plate XIII.).
Line
of
Life,
The
Line
of
Head,
The
Line
of
The
of
Girdle
Line
of
the
The
The
of
Line
The
The The
of
wrist
to
lesser
Line
The
the
Sun,
the
lines
:
Mount
of Venus. of the
center
parallel
runs
found
the
above
Mounts
Saturn
of
which
of
that
to
line
and
from
runs
the
of
hand. of
the
head,
at
the
the
heart
and
generally
Sun.
the
Line
of
three
of
Mount
Mount
of
Mercury
down
of
the
the
the
on
Plain
of
Mars
and
Sun. of
center
the
hand,
from
the
Saturn,
hand
which
Life
generally
occupies
the
on
Mars,
Lasciva^
Luna
to the
Mount
lines
Via
of
rises
Fate, which
Line
Line
which
hand
are
rises
on
as
the
follows
:
Mount
of Mars
lies within
and
(Plate XIII.).
which
lies
parallel to
the
line
extends
like
a
Intuition, which
of health
semicircle
(Plate XIIL). from
Mercury
(Plate XII.). of
Marriage,
(Plate XIIL), The
the
crosses
which
Health,
the
to
follows
lesser
seven
fingers.
the
Line
seven
as
and
hand,
hand.
ascends
The
are
HAND.
the
on
embraces
which
Venus,
encircling The
THE
lines
vrhich
Heart, the
of
OF
lines
important
The
base
LINES
important
seven
are
IL
bracelets
the
horizontal
line
on
the
Mount
and
found
of
Mercury v
on
the
wrist
(Plate XIIL).
72
)..
Plate
XIII."
THE
MAP
OF
THE
HAND.
CHAPTER
IN
The be
clear
be
free
rules and
in
Lines
Lines
of
Lines mind
his
will
unforgiving.
must
cipal
line
subject It
of
they
should
that
they
should
color
;
kind.
any
first
of
want
place,
disposition
hopeful
in
is
purely
robust
show
they
;
The
the
that
past the
and the
future.
show
iis
If
e^
it
will
is
an"i
the
reading
the
evil
predict
can
is
important,
hands
both
hand,
be
must
borne
evil
in is to
tendencies
whether
he
not
or
the
has
nature
whether
not
or
evil
single
no
very
therefore,
how
seeing
by
be
the
subject's
perament, tem-
usually
one
palmist, out
palmist
In
decisive.
as
the
of
matter
a
the
trouble,
grave
always
must
pointing
by
danger
liver
proud.
nature,
of
province
and
melancholy,
a
which
fade,
or
tendencies,
in
accepted
hand.
tell of
distant
haughty,
a
and
reserved,
black,
almost
biliousness
of
indicative
approaching
these
will
of
place, that
decision.
sanguine,
diminish,
the
reading
overcome
be
indicate
appear,
evils
be
in
the
and
energy
the
color,
and
overcome
will
in
also
nature.
modified
first
pale
in
self-contained,
nature
dark
may
the
warn
of
being
as
and
when
the
nor
indicate,
indicate
well
as
a
very
revengeful
in
are,
irregularities
or
lack
LINESo
temperament.
lines,
indicators
THE
broad
color
second, color
robust
Yellow
of
in
red
active,
are
the
lines
neither
in
pale
TO
the
to
islands,
breaks,
very
and,
RELATION
marked,
all
Lines
an
relation
well
from
health,
in
III.
almost
mark
prin-
every
consulted
evils
the
before
,,
decision
however, In
the
I
final.
sign the
to
answer
predicted but
be
can
say
in
the
just
is
.igle sign
Si
by
repeated
question. hand?
as
A
I
decidedly
Can answer
that
in
itself
other
lines,
people that
they
the
avert
or
if i
the
danger
decidedly rarel}'
74
shows
only
ever
avoid I
tendency
is then
danger
believe do.
that I
know
a
;
when,
certainty. or
disaster
they
can;
hundreds
-/ "^^
^'(1,1?)isUv-?\m^ \ii"5
V""^0
^yA\
ovx
^
^Oo.c
^^*"^^
Wa.'vt"\^
"*^"%U (\
"^v%^ C^yvwud^i^."^,,s y\^\
V
^^^\y-\y^
\"^\\^^
%
c.)Lv6jL4.tiw
yivA". Plate
XIV."
LINE
FORMATIONS.
In of
in
cases
which
they did
society.
would the would
be
infirm
begged her horses
coachman
Even
to go
not
the
been
taken
not
deter
then
reached.
She
A
week
later,one
the horses
as
with
her
remarkable
point
control of the horses ; smashed
occupant
in
this
was
Street.
example
into my
predictionhas proved only
and injuries,
comment
no
last
night bad. his
to take
in
was
her
place.
could
have
to say, he took
doing this that The
the sidewalk
lost
man
; the
carriage
extraordinarycoincidence,its I
hall.
own
she has
too true:
husband,
warning:
reached.
on
at
am
sorry
recovered
never
that
to say
from
those
will.
never
I make
an
her
coachman
It
was
in
dashed they took fright,
unconscious
The
happen
the
destination, but, strange
against a lamp-post,and, by carried
the
which
foggy night, she
substitute had
a
started.
she
and
to reach
dull
them
in
promised that she
restive and
were
ample ex-
known
would
warning, this time through
a
ings warn-
by animals
had
and seriouslyill,
her,
caused
which
unlikely,and drove through Bond
most
was
out,
well
woman
and life,
departed.
four different ways
the most
she
a
accurate
remarkable
most
of her
brought round, and
this did
gone
the
for the rest
of
case
given
The
accident
an
75
were
late.
the
was
of
again she got
;
were
had
her
that
age
horses
recall
can
warned
careful,and
her
ordered
The
I
point of
very
who
her
make
I
people
realize till too
not
of this which London
to the Lines.
experience where
own
my
Relation
strange story ; I simply relate the facts
this
on
as
they occurred. The
above
rarely if
we
is
only will
ever
example
one
in many
by warnings,
go
that
in what
matter
no
be cited to show
could
they
way
that
may
be
given. When what
is called
side,it break
important line,such
an
is
a
sister line
a
danger lessened
line will or
If there is it
a
with
fork
gives greater power the
line is thus
be, as
prevented.
the line of life than
any
at the end to that
\
it were,
This
is
a
is found life,
fine line
with
running by its
strengthened; consequently any by this mark, and the
bridged over more
of
or
found
often
in connection
with
other. of any
line,except
line ; as, for
mentality,but makes
\
the line of head
{a^a,Plate XVI.),namely,
sign that the main
in the main
as
more
or
that
instance,on less of
a
of life
(Plate XVI.),
the line of head
double
nature.
creases it in-
Cheird's
76
the
all
of
end
the
talent
of
the
of
the
line
{c-c^
Plate
head,
it
head
in
of
fixity
line
any
lines
are
joining
like
formation
When
running
entire
aimlessly
temperament,
nervous
As
study
the
the
great.
little I
the
sign
a
of
particularly
part, and
the
dissipation
of
the
of
and
power
reverse.
the
for
its
accentuate
these
heart,
grains therefore
branches
ascending and
the
on
lines
subject
:
affections
important
are
most
the
ascending
{a-a,
Plate
lines
XVII.)
;
in
line
line
any
and
little
(Fig. 8,
all
and
a
make
cleverness
they
show
sign
(Plate
and
ambitious
in
success
all
takings under-
Plate
the
on
line
of
line
from
("-6, Plate by
it
;
the
they
XVII.).
side denote
of
the
main
weakness,
XIV.). network
a
it
betrays
or
mental
multitude
worry,
of a
little
highly
nature.
mountains,
recommend
if
line
the
on
XVII.).
running
with
directions,
troubled
the
falling
;
if
:
intellect.
{c-c, Plate of
XIV.)
affection
of
of
hair-lines
is covered
in
weak
power
it, sometimes
hand
a
failure
the
those
is
weakness
its
denote
fate
of
changeability
and
ideas,
denote
point.
weakens
line, sometimes chained
of
line
warmth
particular
formation
wavy
Capillary
lines
forms
XIV.)
denote
marriage
and
weakness
denotes
of
the of
formation
Breaks
the
it is
XYI.)
opposite.
that
at
want
A
it
weakness
Plate
(a-a,
descending
success
XVI.),
chained
heart
which
of
it denotes
line
any
vigor
the
made A
("-", Plate
tassel
a
line
any
of
indicate
point
On
from
commencement
descending,
the
in
where
life,
branches
all
but the
this
at
to
of
rising
considering
when
ends
Hand.
the
of
qualities.
nerve
At
line
the
Branches
strength,
line
destruction
and
weakness at
the
however,
When,
Language
their
so
do close
these
little
consideration.
points
make
this
^*
"/(
/(v.SteA' ^;.(,A.-"v.'iw^,o^'vAv"\bVA Vxiij'i
iv.,^/w^y^v
,0
0
0
(*;o,^/v.^^ Ad
Plate
XV."
SIGNS
FOUND
IN
THE
HAND.
Clieird's
78
advice,
My and
what
see
upon
It
is
subject alike.
very
careful
to
hardly
that
follow
has
The
the
the
is, had
a
examination
when
a
in
his
the
lines
marked
method
conducted
details
of
work
in
and
this
way.
a
your
be,
again,
amination ex-
depend
shown
than
can
past
both
life,
so
change general hands
with
person
brought
more
change
The
by the
be
lines
some
perceptible.
subject's
ideas,
the
people
hands;
is
life
to
as
Some
barely
eventful
will
have
people
both
is
them,
by
reason
what
versa.
on
examine
hand.
right
difference
interesting,
more
interesting
more
changes
that
are
in
side;
the
forecasting
vice
alike
by
find
is;
left-handed
and
hand, lines
difference
the
that
note
left
two
;
side
it
in
and,
in
Hand.
hands
what
see
lines
to
the
on
that
slightly
rule
of
interesting
very
completely so
or
been,
the
of
both
place
change
that
development
marked
clearly
has
nature
this
for
the
is:
therefore, the
Language
and
to
the
both
the
even
light
by
a
MODIFICATIONS
OF
PRINCIPAL
THE
Plate
XVI.
LINES.
CHAPTER
A
know
we
A
OF
LINE
THE
What
V.
as
little
glimpse,
A
by
the
immeasured
vista,
a
existence,
haven
a
amid
space
is but
life
waiting-place,
LIFE.
of
sea,
distance,
that
life
be.
tc
Cheiro.
As
I remarked
world's to
recognized
the line
tne
lines
of
health
to
this
do
there
by
lurks
a
have
can
affects
the
the
must
that
be
will, therefore, between
known be
touching soul
the
two,
by as
in
the
has
the
on
life,
all
of
disease
its
stages
brain
already 79
if
on
the been
but
active or
of hand
weak
the
demonstrated.
the
we
do also
must
we
in
and
they of
as
"
point
through
presence
body
brain,
advance
fore, there-
and
acknowledge
we
person
its
nerves, in
little
Who,
by
germ
power
ability
every
fatal.
tion rela-
a
one's
of
body
the
if the
the
to
than
presence
and
passive
germ
brain
registered the
the
of
affects
life,
in
not
death;
prove
this
that
turn
spirit
or
slightest to
its
in
day
some
the
of
istics character-
object
reasonable in
also
Thus,
why
or
so
line
abnormal
disease
that
the
the
came
etc.,
eyes,
for
of
there
as
possesses.
lightly
more
deny
nose,
that
subject
period
man,
position hand
predict
will
that
temperament,
is admitted
to
mysteries the
the
all,is
that
which
without
unexplained
acknowledge
It
tendency
omnipotent
that
the
reasonable
to
after
was
for
natural
this
ability
presumption
Again,
all-knowing, "
his
nerve-fluid,
hand!
the
face
regards
as
in
subject,
a
only
consider
study.
the
the
on
so
nothing,
or
germ
mankind
mark
if
who in
careful
of
it is and
People
that
study
other
every
palmist
this
recognized
coursts
show
will
thought
be
expected; 1
the
to
given
be
to
are
of
greatest
to
abnormal
portion
position
came
a,nd
head,
take
to
the natural
a
there
hand
earlier
an
when
history
be
on
in
the
attack,
the
tem sysand
nection nerve-con-
Thus,
by
the
Cheiro^s
80
development that
to say
such
certain disease
of what
examination The
important The
is
will
we
such
proceed
now
and to
an
the line of life.
as
embraces
death, and
and
Mount
the
the Mount
of Venus.
events
foreshadowed
and
deep, without
long, narrow,
be
Such
kind.
formation
a
(Fig. 10, Plate
sign of
sure
its
recovers
in the
illness ; but
bad
of
On
it is
the
by
other
irregularities,
promises long life,good
XIV.)
health,and and
evenness
when
hands
on
soft hand.
a
also is
regained.
right,it threatens
it
some
death. generallysignifies
branch
one
of little pieces
up
so particularly
joined in the
in both
confirmed
made
or
continuity,health
and
left hand if broken
decidedly
more
of Venus
pclmist able
illness with
cause
mind,
is the
verified.
a
broken
dangerous
mark
vitality.
the line
This
illness
of any
chain,it is
When
known
and
hand
the line is linked
When
in
arguments
become
life should
crosses
health,and
When
the
are
line of
breaks, or
a
lines
will
certain time
a
that
or
(Plate XIII.) is the line which, risingunder
down
time, also
marked
like
has
line of life
Jupiter,goes
at
these
Bearing
result.
a
of this line
nou-development
or
a
Language of the Hand.
turns
back
on
the Mount
(c-c,Plate XVII.).
When
the line starts
the side of the
hand,
the base
from
it denotes
that
of the Mount
of
Jupiter,instead
the earliest the life has
from
been
of of
one
ambition. When iu
the line is chained
Jupiter,bad health
early life is foreshadowed. When and
reason
the line is
Plate
affects
self,and
that
of the
subject is extremely
the more
less cautious
or
in
head, life is guided by sensitive
about
enterprisesfor
thing every-
self
{d-d^.
XVI.).
When
there is
subject is
energy
with
closelyconnected
but intelligence,
which
the
under
at the commencement
and
When,
a
very
medium
and
hasty, and
not
between
space
free to
carry
out
his
the line of life and
plans
that
ideas; it
and
also
of
head,
denotes
go-ahead spirit{d-d,Plate XVII.).
however, the
confidence
When
more
a
space
is very
dash; it indicates guided by
the lines of
wide, it is
that the
a
sign
of too
much
self-
subject is foolhardy,impulsive,,
reason.
life, head, and
heart
are
all joine^ together at the
I
com-
The
{a-a^ Plate
mencement
the
subject, through
catastrophe.
indicates and a
on
other
line
shoots
the
to
flabby, soft hand, with for
be logically and the
denotes
and
reason
for
sloping
of
the
concerned, indicates in
and
those
the
arising
will
out
for
of
sloping line
this statement
head
crossing
indolent
in this
as
the
to
the
change, but,
and
lazy
too
statement,
line
travel,
is found
the
will
be
will
be
on
restless
gratified can
seen,
Mount
hand
it
of
Luna
soft
being
and
satisfy this craving by
to
showing
case
for
denotes
craving
one
XVIII.),
mark
a
again
the
case
This
the
:
such
it
head,
in this
craving
be
of
kind.
(/;-",Plate
When
and
hand,
life,a great desire
restless
line
the
of
center
of Luna
desire.
but
some
nature
Mount
a
that
easily reasoned
flabby, the subject travel,
of
excitement,
restless
is
the
about
at
hand
a
intemperance
or
that
blindly into danger and
rushes
personal dangers
of the
base
satisfaction
nature, craving
in
sign, denoting
unfortunate
very
people.
firm, well-made
a
81
temperament
as
life divides
of
across
the ultimate
in vice
far
as
a
temperament,
perception, both
of
the
branch
mark,
with
dealings When
defect
a
This
subject's want from
XVIII.), it is in
of Life.
Line
weak
a
the
nature,
is apparent. ^
When
little hair-lines
life,they
tell of weakness
They
very
are
breaking All and
often
lines that
found
at
rise from
from
dropping
loss
of
the
end
date
vitalityat the of
line
the
the
dissipation
the
line of lite
clinging
or
when
marks
are
they
itself,thus
of vital power
the
to
of increased
appear. the
denoting
{h-h, Plate
of
line
XVI.).
gains,
power,
successes.
If such
line ascend
a
XVIII.),
it will
the
of
line of
sense
Saturn wealth
If
denotes If
denote
life.
and
the
Such
follow
in
rise a
or
relates
by
side
of
Plate (cZ-c?,
line
leave
leave
the
in business
or
resulting
step higher
Jupiter (c-c, Plate the
at
successful
to
the
line of
of
line,
the
in
the
contrary, rise
fate, it denotes
from
it leaves
ambition
ihQ
on
date
the
subject's own
increase energy
to
of and
XVIII.).
the
line
according line or
the
Mount
the
more
If
else.
anything the
into
run
position
mark
worldly things, but
distinction it
toward a
than
power and
determination
success
and
of the life and
up
found
are
of
of life and to
the
life
class
and
science, again
cross
in
to the
ascend
Mount
Sun, it
of the
of hand. to
Mercury,
accordance
with
it the
promises class
great
of hand
Cheiro's
82
whether
"
reached
conic
the
on
For
instance, such
science
or
of
Hand.
the
of
it would
action
impulsive
the
by
in business
success
; and
discovery
or
conic.
spatulate, or
squai'O,
indicate
would
Language
;
the
on
foretell
such
the
on
square
spatulate, in invention in
success
nature,
a
line
a
as
in
and
a
matters,
money
sudden
speculation
enterprise.
or
When
life in
his be
life divides
lines, it is
the
between
of
line
the
from
great change
some
indication
an
difcerent
country
a
toward that
the
end
the
subject will
of his
that
from
birth,or
of birth
place
wide
the
to
the
at
is shown
space
probably
most
least
that
will
there
of death
place
end
{a-a, Plate
XIX.). island
An island
lasts
of the
line
little line A
of
the
life,otherwise
confounded
line with
that
rise
that
all even,
influences
the
the
of
the
over
and
and
line
Mars, which
life
of
rises
of Venus.
{f-f,Plate the
they
the
of
terminate
mark
of
of
line
of
itself,nor
rule
simplest
show
others
life
line
of
and
(^-/7,Plate
is,therefore, an
XIX.).
within
This
the
dant atten-
with
those
mind
in
bear
the opposite caused
obstacles
Where
important
is.
favorable
risingin
XVIL).
be
not
must
life indicate
that all those worries
Mars,
to
when
preservation. and
parallel to
Mount
but
XVIP),
interference
a
sudden
{d, Plate
of Mars
found
tion preserva-
accident
the
on
The
life-line
indicates
from
and
the
subject's birth.
island, from
an
life,is
following the
lines
the
while
commencement
Mars, I shall speak later.
sjjringing from
catting
how
line
Plain
(Plate XIII.)
the
Mount
and
on
line
well-formed
opposition end
found
thoee
upon
direction
lines
the
health
the
XIX.)
broken,
rises from
called of
is
of
at
with
it surrounds
when
life-line
attendant
great
line, the
the
the
island
{c, Plate
square
loss
or
connected
running through
whenever
square,
Of line
cutting
a
health
bad
illness
an
mystery
through
from
means
clearly formed
a
some
life-line
the
but
XIX.),
running
death,
when
death
of life
of life denotes
from
a
(5,Plate
line
The
line
the
on
by these
point
in
this
study. When
they
interference
of relatives
When
they
XVI.), they and
the
cut
where
people
they
cut
of
life
generally
"
the
cross
denote
line
life-line who
the
will
fate-line
only (g-g, in the and oppose
the
Plate
home
life.
attack
the
us
point
in of
the
XVII,), they denote
line
business
of or
fate
(c-f, Plate
worldly
junction gives
the
ests, inter-
date.
Cheiro's
84
to
at different intervals.
persecute her
is illustrative
of
the
fiery,passionate,animal the
If,however,
who
man
strongly influence If the farther the
that
When
at that
the
attendant
will be
"
the
will of
out
the
these
of the person
injury at
line of heart The
hand, that
woman's
that
and
more
her
life
she
will
that lose
more
altogether (i-i,
thing some-
"
point
life will
it touch
and
generally
runs
instrumentality of
through the
influences
from
the
be.
the
change
to
the
over
another
hate, and
the
that this
the fate,the head, life,
line
But,
of
with
systems connected
before
as
or
the
is reasonable
to
life-line.
point
refer
remarked,
this
to
with
removed
farther
the
could
one
Hindus
are
palmistry.
relation
again
life,the
cross-lines,which
lines and
alone, then, it
will
cease
separation
joins a cross-line
predict marriages by considering the We
renews
his influence
XIX.).
these
for all
but life-line,
again.
altogether,total
lines
ray-lines lie
on
By this system
of
that
companionship.
attendant
those
volume
foundation
it itself,
one
disgrace,and
the side of the
it will be renewed
fades
of such
whatever
the
lives will
easilyfill a
into
run
becomes
or
influencing the life will
person that
by
out
influencing the
{e-e,Plate
farther
our
but
it,it foretells that
cause
island
an
life will
her
over
into
runs
line fades
result
of
one
with
affection
the
of life and
line
it indicates life,
the
from
away
eventually drift
line of influence
the
When
can
a
will result.
particular point,
When
the
the
of the
on
is connected
woman
will
influence
the
later,it tells that
itself
from
denoting
as
gentler nature, and
the
Venus, thus
ray-line,however,
scandalous
will
her,
retreats point, in traveling with the life-line,
any
the
her, and
the
foretells
hand
hand
woman^s
a
XVI.). When
death
by the side
rise
life has
her
of
whom
with
sympathy Plate
into
Mount
with
person
on
him.
the
on
line
a
influences
who
man
{f-f Plate XVII.), it shows,
ray-line,rising at
in
the
ray-line should
enters
such
Again,
temperament.
travel by the side of it the
of
nature
of the Hand.
Language
that
assume
which
when
we
these
the lines
consider
student bear
the
to
tion ques-
marriage.
Another
interesting phase
of
this
\
subject is the
consideration
of
the
The
number
of these
the
of life
line
they
Such
have
may
of influence
important).
are
affection.
upon
people
less affected When Mount
those
by the
line
of Venus
whom
of
life sweeps
greater
a
he
love
eyes
near
nature
dependent
in their
disposition
a
all.
redeems
indicates
those
only
that
the
On
;
the
individual
is
is associated.
far
into
out
it is in itself
scope,
indicate
passionate
of Venus
Mount
with
their
in
that
remembered
is called
what
85
lines
Numerous
liaisons, but
many
of Life.
(itbeing
are
hand, the full, smooth
other
the
of
sign
a
thus
hand, good
the
allowing
physical strength
long life.
and
When, is not the
of the
For
I
in
most
relation
to
here
remark
lines
meet
when
the
indicated
squares,
will
will
the
the to
the
devoted
of
The
health
Venus,
shorter
the
line
find
it is of
out
Such
the the
regards to
and
a
and
warn
these
will
death
the
be
province
the
of
that
subject
of
the I
be
years
of
that
ter Chap-
life-line. of health
received
the
relation
that
however,
may,
in
the of
germ
these
advance
by whatever one
in
long.
life,where
of
it be
caused
indicated"
line
not
health,
with
and
the
has
detail.
though
even
term
broken
of
in
treated
equal strength
of
disease
many
uses
disease
is of
which
system.
information student time
be
death,
of
of the
enemy to
will
position
line
natural
explained
as
the
hitherto
the
death
otherwise
would
would
and
the
which
Catastrophes
points, as
at
age
denotes
life that
which
consider
we
point
slope
point
a
a
surely
as
exact
merely
at certain
all,the
is
health-line,
etc., I refer As
of
another
when
the
be
just
the
influences.
short
cut
head-line
When one
line
accidental
death
life-line
to
addition
fully. be
in the
life-line ends.
by
Mount
built.
well
so
This
may,
important
that,
then In
hand
break
bear
study is
even
the
it deserves.
lines
these
the
to
always show
not
apart from
foretell
will
attention
more
a
and
this
life
of
instance,
Again,
physically
quite convinced.
am
lines
VII.,
body
close
life.
subject's
other
by
the
line of life does
the
place
it lies very
contrary,
or
the
shorter
takes
the
on
robust
so
That
is
lines
Line
and
subjects.
I back the
have to
here
given
Chapter
calculation
concerning
III.,which of
events,
treats a
islands, of
them
special chapter
CHAPTER
THE
The inner the
line
life line
of
It
all
on
while
it
b]iug
all
his
hand
When
of
XX.),
every
kind,
through that
in
such
break recover,
that
indicate
through
or
side
the
by
lines
vital
known
of
the
as
of robust
into
it
type
deal
play.
will
of It
gives
be
tial mar-
a
denotes
in
engaged which
annoyance is
of
excess
It also
strength.
individual
great
a
this
it denotes
always
will
excellent
an
is
this
line
terrible
a
robustness
very
out
to
tendency of
the
the
Mount
toward
of
intemperance and
nature,
{h-l,
Luna
of
the
for
craving
gives. of
by
hand
the
line
of
Mars
the
side
of
a
line
giving life
of
closeness the
it
that
are
and
breaks,
broken
faint
is that
man
the
qualities
from
there
the
type
a
fighting
Mars
and
life-line to
down
sweeps
those
inner
soldier.
a
generally
dangerous A
it
other
it is
subject
shoots
it tells
The
be
or
Plate
here
will
branch
a
excitement
the
of a
disposition,
to
and
to
;
the
as
earlier.
line
hands
and
from
way
the
known
Mars,
little
a
close
martial
the
every
of
fighting
a
of
spoke
broad
or
runs
quarrels,
I
in
characteristic
square
many
on
which
rather
nature,
Mount
MAES.
otherwise
is
XIII.)
the
on
OF
LINE
is distinct
life, but
general
health
(Plate
rises
lines, of
The
sign
Mars
line.
attendant
that
of
YI.
great
found
the
supports to
such
death,
a
but
vitality given
86
the line
the
and
long, narrowband, life.
of
life-line, carrying
Its
it
istics character-
past
any
nature.
beside
helped by
on
fragile line
delicate,
vitality
with to
is
the
by line
it will
at
this
mark
of
Mars.
the the
point
of
subject
the will
MODIFICATIONS
OF
THE
Plate
PRINCIPAL
XVII.
LINES.
CHAPTER
VII.
THELINEOFHEAD,
"
To
know
And
is
use
That
the
at
And
"
brains
end
give
let
power"
our
we
tired
intent,
eyes
what
than
more
wise,
be
good
every
with
come
Nature
to
then
us
with
she
lent, Cheiro.
The
line
subject
to
talent,
is of
extreme
the
various
of head
on
on
and
proceed
a
The
with
the
in
will
on
have
is
a
of
Jupiter, the
the
of
the
half take
^"^^
that
the
a
sloping of
importance
ities peculiarline
of
sloping
a
characteristics
general
its
itself.
talent
instance,
the
in
temperament
line
this
for
; as,
three
different
points the
of
commencement
the
XX.)
determination
a
of
and
from
"
line
of
first,
the
of
center
from
life, or
of will
man
in
even
the
people
or
not
yet
daring
and
things,
of
in
it
have
ambition to
seem
rule,
but
trol con-
takes
he
designs;
is strong
life,
will
boundless
others,
most
line
subject
a
with
purpose,
his
Such
all.
control
the
touching
yet of
powerful
most
caution
just
in
power.
variation but
from
Such
management
administration There
rises
his
of
of
eatality
u.
afterward.
{c-c^ Plate
head,
have
mind not
the
with
the
to
to
life-line.
daring
will
is
the
the
quality
will, however,
from
reason.
he
them; pride
and
energy,
combined
of
in
hand
rise
can
and
connection
variations
Jupiter
line
long
in borne
We
within
from
Rising
talent,
head
weakness,
or
direction
be
conic
or
Jupiter,
Mars,
the
principally
relates
strength
types
consider
of
of
of
to
hand.
to
line
Mount
a
XIII.)
importance
square
Mount
is, if
(Plate
and
psychic
a
line
the
head
intellectual
"
relation It
of the
to
of is
this
slightly
characteristics
of
which
is
separated the
almost from
first, but 87
with
equally the
line less
strong. of
control
life. and
again
This
Such
a
type
diplomacy.
Clieivd's
88
will be
He a
find
would
man
his
greatest opportunity.
will
subject
the
wide,
in action.
decision,impetuous
in
hasty
of the Hand.
Language
be
As
leader
a
in
however, the
When,
foolhardy, egotistical,and
crisis such
a
is very
space
will
rush
blindly into
the
line
of
danger.
it
with
connected
down
themselves
Plate
is
XIX,), the
of
indicates in
inconstant
of
ideas
the
this
nature
; he
When
the
When
a
with
disagreeable trait
things in
by the
than
more
the
sea
nervous
with
this mark
and
liue
the
side. out-
thought, than
are
gives his
with
his
bors neigh-
less irritable.
are
follows:
as
practical common
and
sense
a
imagination.
purely practical; of
way
conflict or
of head
in
Mars
slightlj"sloping, it
first naif, then
common-sense
in
more
of the
those
with
side in-
the
on
steadfast
more
(/-/,
the
on
inconstant
are
always
life-line
the
extreme
connection
it denotes
even,
purely imaginative and
level-headed,
going
work,
to
shows
balance
a
such
a
even
when
subject
will
dealing
imaginative things. the
When
entire
line has
work, the quality the
is
he
"
highly sensitive,nervous,
straight the
between have
individual, and
straight,clear,and
of material
love
more
extreme
is the
temperament,
such
generalities indicated
The
head-line
wide-spaced
of the
is also
people
Mars, within
of
action, the shifting sands
one
and
sign, it being the
fretful,worrying
an
clever
even
;
the Mount
favorable
a
the
a
sensitive
a
life, and
tightly.
such
as life-line,
This
of caution
rising from
not
of
commencement
XVI.), indicates
excess
too
of head
line
The
the
{d-d^ Plate
; it denotes
temperament rein
from
head
of
line
The
type
of
hand,
When
very
When
sloping, and
either
hand
with
terminating the
extremely long
and
(the percussion),
imagination
it
power,
a
fine
denoting,
fork
in
inative imagwith
accordance
mechanical
the
on
toward
leaning
idealism, imaginative work,
of
ordinary intellectual
such
a
music, painting, literatui'e,or
sloping, romance,
promises literary talent When
of
is
slight slope, there
a
invention.
Bohemianism.
and Mount
of
Luna,
imaginative order. straight, and
usually denotes but
is inclined
going directly to that to
the be
the
subject
has
in
the
selfish
side
of the than
more
use
of
that
power.
When
this
Ime
lies
it
straight across
the
hand
and
slightly curves
upward
Cheiro^s
90
for
power
accident
fatal
line
if the If
is
does
the
human
Hand.
and
nature,
generally
will
great
of
that
the
line
of
accident
from
to
a
into
runs
or
all
in
or
never
foretells
some
through
star
a
things
of
clearly
Mount
attempted. from
the
not
it
square,
subject's
the
on
fascination, a
defined,
recover.
into
upward
matter
the
by
When
runs
branch
be
violence
or
will
success
will
head
it
hands,
XVII.).
person
hair-lines
little
both
on
Plate
offshoot
an
affections
the
heart,
When
of
number
a
the
wonderful
of
sign
a
(j,
farther, sends
two
head.
weakness
of
head
in
broken
the
to
extend
of
it is
When
is
head
sign
a
not
line
Jupiter,
of
violence
or
island
An
of
line
the
When
to
with
toying
the
of
determination.
and
of
and
playing
Language
own
line of
of
love.
indicates
vation preser-
and
courage
head
presence
mmd. there
When
when
beneficial
is and
is
a
not
self-confidence,
Plate
with
people inclined
such be
to
extremely
wide
too
is
when
;
of
useful
a
mark
a
wide,
it
the
line
sign
would
hasty,
too
dO
line
of
and
action for well
and
foolhardiness,
and
sleep
actors, on
that
denotes
their
of
preachers,
energy
When
this
excessive
(f-f, etc.,
decisions
it
life,
thought
"
impatient.
assurance,
of
splendid
readiness
barristers, to
head
it
medium,
self-confident,
denotes
the
between
promptness
This
XXI.).
found
space
they
but
are
is
space
effrontery,
and
self-confidence. When that
Such
thing
of
life,
and
individuals will
wound
low
of down
suffer and
head, in
greatly grieve
the
on
the
hand,
from
them.
contrary, there
extreme
is is
very utter
tightly want
sensitiveness,
connected
of
with
self-confidence. and
the
slightest
VIII.
CHAPTER
THE
The
point
line
of
it is found
to
head
than
important These
is
of
the
brain
development,
follows
that
at
a
in
heavy;
will
show
line
but nature
alter
that
remarkable
most
be
of
twenty
the
entire
there
life
of
thirty
it affect
the
thought
the
be
may at
of
and
nerves
or
action
or
the
itself.
It
change thus
the
is indicated
dencies ten-
of
of
that
as
various
process
commencement
but
;
the
a
life
to
characteristics.
that
through
evolutions
the
to
must
change
a
point
relate
assume,
natural
theory
more
are
it.
to
its
the
by
working
similar
so
for
accounted their
beyond
artistic,
an
nature
with
which
on
on
the
to
reasonable
and
hand
imaginative
accordance
more
of
type
contrary
in
outside
the
type,
signs
therefore
brain
brain,
the
with
the
the
country,
our
and
a
this
slow
therefor" a
ment develop-
has
already
hand.
Thus
before
years
it
place. Starting
in
age
toward
tendency
takes
the
is
reach
and
commenced
TYPES.
with
with
practical
a
on
indicated
it
might
may
SEVEN
THE
connection
accordance
follows
growth
which
in
practical
of
the
TO
in
observed
usually
peculiarities,
divergence
a
RELATION
IN
characteristics
development
Such
be
therefore
It
on.
HEAD
:
namelj^,
"
the
rules
follows
as
The
so
OF
general
are
and
LINE
of
head
tendency,
that
among
This is
so
savage
a
toward
accounts
at
for
found
91
it
will
with
variance the
to
be
For
fear
the
of
show the
it found
to
straight,
short, unusual
any
subject.
Luna
among
tribes.
a
would
type of
such
in
approach
nearest
development
completely
often
such
on
downward
dropping
influences.
dread
particularly
the
characteristics
superstitious it
head-line
natural
consequently unusual
hand,
elementary
extent
instance,
imaginative
an
brutal
the
unknown,
lower
class
such
and
the of
animal
stitious super-
humanity,
92
Cheiro^s
THE
The
hand
such
to
line
The
characteristics
shows
even
greater slope of in
class
the
with
hand
imaginative
The
this type this
the
of
THE
LINE
The
start
pursuit ideas
to
philosophic
hand
but life.
long, closely connected
sloping.
The
things
keeping with
that
opposite
the
but
with
nature,
than
the
a
The
square for
inspirational
purely in the
far
difference
practical foundation
a
be
est slight-
the
to
temperament.
THE
TO
of
hands
and
writers,
the
but
when
not
unnatural
When,
IN
the
others for
get scope will
RELATION
of
TO
be
THE
the
opposite
The
natural
with
type,
the or
and
rather
position line the
of
fulfilment, and,
man
eccentric for the
with
such
a
are
the
of
type,
that far
as
low the
on
hand
as
restless,irritable,and
the
the
satisfied. dis-
HAND.
PHILOSOPHIC
life,set
head
in check
much
(Part I.,Chapter V.) is thoughtful,
imaginative
of
line
characteristics
all these
so
action,invention,
therefore,on
straight,the
lying
nature
hand
is the
is that
result
HAND.
SPATULATE
position for
natural
slightlysloping.
concerned, the
HEAD
every-day
follows
noticeable
KELATION
originality. The
wisdom,
of
would
extremely
in
long,
psychic,
or
(Part I.,Chapter IV.)
OF
of
conic
other
IN
imagination will is
and
direct
difference
would
is
HEAD
long, clear,and
temperament
is
a
subject's practical ideas will keep
plans
or
etc.
strengthened;
or
the
the
sloping is accentuated,
doubled the
is
and
all
imaginative faculties
of the
on
head-line
difference
spatulate hand
independence,
be
whereas
OF
LINE
line
same
sloping
the
sloping,being
would
painters, musicians,
THE
science, and
reason,
It therefore
itself.
development
the
This
HAND.
SQUAKE
straight
is
type
a
hand
this line
work,
imaginative.
THE
is the useful (Part I.,Chapter III.),
logic, method,
such
on
of work the
TO
matters.
greater
a
stated
with
of the
of
KELATION
IN
I have
as
of head
appearance
HEAD
it deals
;
appertaining
OF
hand,
square
practical
the
LINE
of the Hand.
Language
in the
earnest
on
the
application
line of head down
in
this
on
the
straight line
of
type
hand, and of
head
on
The the
Line
in Relation
of Head
philosophichand, the line
and cynical;he will analytical,
fancies,and
foibles ; he
unreal,to laugh
the
will ;
will stand
in the face of the
of
is the hand
such
of
In this type the
This
is the
these
worshipers of
HEAD
the
beautiful
of the
square
the
The
and
brings; he
Why
publicwants,
The natural
giving
V
CONIC
the
gives
the
to
the
LINE
OF
will
of it. to
leaning
love of
paint ten
"
IN
positionfor the
so
the
will be the
RELATION
TO
on
THE
it
will sell them.
he will know
sense
money
slopinghead-line
and,furthermore,he
line of head
visionary,dreamy
for the
what
luxury by strength of
with
man
of his artistic
use
as
and
result
feel intuitively
much
so
the
the line of
remarkable
very
will
Sun;
often without
are
every
; he
ease
the
of the
children
However, when
make
art
; where
demand,
HEAD
ually grad-
the middle
find the greatest
we
nature, a
a
for
care
the natural
is the
is that which
of Bohemianism
luxurious
practicaldirection
will
artistic, impulsive
freedom
it is that
hand
a
determination
as
philosophy
HAND.
Luna, generallyto
through his practicalbusiness
and
THE
all the
such a
picturehe
Because
disarms
the line of head
with such
; he will not
and
paintone ?
in
will conquer
sense
would
of
indeed
are
subjectwith
public demands
common
THE
appreciationfor the things of art, but
but talents,
nothing, neither
of sentiment.
; here
in combination straight,
follows.
sneer
in oppositionto the practical ideality, qualities
and
These
type.
fads,
or iaiaginative practicalat
give expressionto their artintic ideas.
to
is
Mount
to the
sentiment,romance, keen
TO
positionfor
and characteristic,
most
a
EEFEEENCE
ideas, the lovers
toward
they have
IN
natural
slopesdownward
ideas
will fear
(Part I.,Chapter VI.)belongs
children
nature, the
mystic,to
of
Carlyle.
OF
conic hand
The
a
LINE
THE
head
be
their
expose
of the
genius that discredits genius,a philosopherthat
a
power
is critical, straight,
to failings,
real; he can
93
the study particularly
border-land
the
on
and
Type^i.
and
and
wisdom,
pursue
things material; he
nor things spiritual
"
the hand
on
fellow-men,only to analyze their faults
his
at
high
set
to the Seven
what
the
supply,
PSYCHIC
this hand
qualitiesin accordance
HAND.
is
extremely sloping,
with
this type.
It
Cheiro's
M
is
the
of
one
Such
sloping. entire
would
to
By
the
possesses.
head-line
of
of
to
practical
illustrations
in
are
to
and
tact
greatest
be
have
will
his
exercise
strongest
still
being
very the
This
practical. material
very
a
hand,
circumstances
more
never
a
good
very
talents,
yet
chance, in
even
to
encouragement
ness-like, busi-
or
as
it
art
induce
him
use.
the
student
with
accordance
more
can
left
of
become
such
on
the
pressure
has
subject
head
of
hand,
the
by
head,
Hand.
line
right
and
the
art
straight
that
change
line
straight
more
talents
such
a
the
of
the
on
opportunity
modification
other
of
his
a
denotes
matters
the
require turn
the
have
would
generally
undergone
in
but
he
a
with
even
is
find
to
formation
has
nature
type,
it
found
when
but
things
rarest
Language
important
will
the
than
understand
type
any
of
how
hand.
other
The
marks
make
to
every
modificatums^ that
the
hand
CHAPTER
INSANITY
There
is
really
insanity,
whether
of
forms
which
in
this
It must
This
will
on
balance, The of
insanity
will
XXV.).
tendency, loses
denote Such
his
without
even
her
or
line
of
temporary The
of
developed
thumb,
filled
a
with I have
phases
of
but
insanity hand
series further
insanity
and of
this
head,
gloomy,
When
the
may
grow
it
sanity that
with
brain
is abnormal.
be
the
on
unnatural. and
line
sophic, philoof
head,
to
up
ideas, but
of
hood man-
surely
as
thrown
unusually
an
from
nature
morose,
off
high the
its
the
Mount start
very
melancholy,
and until
increases
a
line
and
subject
this
completely
islands,
shown
like
a
these
by
the
in
indicates
the
of
center
a
ing slop-
brain-illness
some
or
brain-fever.
idiot of
island
narrow
a
generally upon
congenital for
by
mark
illustrated as
and
spatulate,
types.
will
normal
point
is abnormal
imaginative
is shown
consequent
the
the
balance.
insanity head,
of
generally
cause,
mental
Temporary
line
is
subject
a
into
result.
morbidly
a
multitude
entered
abnormal
an
square,
and
be
beyond
point,
surely
so
the
of
to
subject
clearness
the
be
sinks
unnatural
The
cannot
is
that
psychic
or
comes,
development
same
Saturn,
(Plate
will
head
than
plainly
more
general.
most
elementary,
this
perfect
strain
or
the
conic
the
reaches
with
shock and
to
hand,
womanhood
mental
a
relation
child's
a
or
as
in
the
the
of
in
denotes
heading
point
of
imagination
important
more
than even
the
this
any
line
the
therefore,
Luna, be
that
mind
HEAD,
by circumstances.
show
to
OF
hand
on
under
gathered
in
borne
brought
or
LINE
the
which
endeavor
I will
When, Mount
be
THE
BY
tendency
no
could
be
of
SHOWN
hereditary
but
work,
AS
IX.
is
head
remarkable
sloping
for and
its very
made
up
small, badly of
broad
lines
chain.
remarks hand. 95
in Part
III., Chapter
V.,
on
various
Clieird's
96
PROPENSITIES
MURDEROUS
The
passion
or
in
point
working
the
is
nature
a
hand
in the
except^is sensitive
very
which
at
age
HEAD.
OF
killing another the
by
LINE
THE
man
one
shown
not
exist,the
crime
for
as
BY
deeply affected
it has
when
only
propensities
such
murder,
self-defense,is
in
or
then
and
of
act
mere
SHOWN
AS
Hand.
the
of
Language
decidedly shown,
active
their
will
if
; but
nature
I
as
past-event,
a
reach
will
they
of
heat
proceed
to
demonstrate.
in
abnormal
and
by
self-murder.
to
rising line
the
is
by
In rises
such
the
provocation
or
such
they
the
will
cause
the
Sun,
five; of
the
Saturn,
under
the
and
hand,
of
certain
under
is sanity, in-
as
conditions denoted
characteristics
The
indicated
on.
and
the
by
line murder
goes
one
is far
one
their
to
been
amply
in
If
is
the the
that,
of
Mount
once
these
head
twenty-five;
most
with
the
Sun,
interesting points the
line
of
question.
they stop the
head
lX,
slightest ble terri-
and
this
is
point
propensities
and
between
and passes
the
strange
when the
;
under
connection
advance
subject. he
crime
and
hand
even
is not
gratify these
will
in
years
the
prove
and
scope,
the
on
sometimes
for
purpose,
and
must
of
has
place
twenty
or
tendencies
of
before
occur
greater
and
crime, particularly if
life of
a
of head
line
of matter;
This
heart, and
of
abnormal
of
has
its proper
leaves
the
predicts
that
desires.
lived
the
propensities (Plate XXIV.).
head
thirty-five; under This
his
that
and
of matter
extraordinary thing
also
it will
in
stated
of mind
world
have
people
have
destruction
before so
of
temptation they
line
same
who
accomplishment
propensities. that
line
that
"
the
in their
possession
is that
in
those
the
Whether
point
nothing
of head
line
result,such
abnormalities
the
previously
animal
and
murderous
takes it.
beyond
brutal
cas^s
then
hand,
of
I have
hemispheres
two
hands
been
and
The
which
the
the
are
abnormal
are
consider
now
that
the
on
more
the
have
they
into
high
subject
proved
will
remembered
hand
the
if it be
that
characteristics
melancholy,
extreme
We
that, when
remarks
of head.
It will be divides
foregoing
These, however,
falling line.
the
the
direction,abnormal
one
morbidness, lead
in
explained
I have
heart
meet
Saturn before in
the
goes
and
fortystudy over
or
CHAPTER
THE
X.
LINE
Keep .
.
ask
for
peace,
Nor
ask
for
love,
But
be
And
content
when
care
joy,
nor
will
heart, suit
may
nor
best,
betide,
thee
bring
thee
rest.
even
whate'er
love,
to
love
maybe
still,my
.
Nor
HEAET.
OF
Love's
to
side. Cheiro.
The
Love,
the
or
hand.
The
line
Jupiter, Mount
"
such
a
of
Next the
that
worships.
and
love
and
the
the
of
study
causes,
plays
in
nature
the
mensal
of
the
one
so
hand. of
the
in
the
(Plate XIII.), is.that
hand
the
at
follows
well
and
clear,
deep, as
as
the
of
base
the
Mercury.
:
the
It
colored.
middle
fingers, and
second
the
will
can
Alas
it
with
see
no
! such
the
worship
of
the
from
the
Plate
XX.),
the
the
choice
shall
faults, people
rising
rise
may
of
Mount of
center
the
are
from
the
in
the that
sufferers 98
Mount the
denotes
enthusiast,
the
A
ideal.
;
and
great, noble,
man
he
is
as
famous
have
will
the
gives
affections
his
in be
heart's
it
far
less
Saturn.
This
failings
no
the
station, and
his
from
XX.).
blind
of
reliable
line
line
{d-d,
and
beneath
the
(e-e, Plate
gives
Jupiter
his
marry
consider
itself ;
of
woman
man
and
of
firm, strong,
never
the
center
pride
is
would
finger
he
the
the
that
than we
from
formation
qualities pride
be
positions, first
life, and
portion
Sun,
should
natural
called
upper
the
"
man
love-affairs
from
rises
ambitious a
of
in
Saturn.
type
such
heart
from
sexes
otherwise
Saturn,
line
important
an
drama
the
the
the
it
highest
the
heart,
important
When
with
of
between of
in
across
Jupiter,
three
from
of
runs
of
naturally of
parts
line
which
is
attraction
The
Mounts
well
heart
prominent
most
line
of
line
being in
the
of
excess
so
man
Jupiter,
of
carried
whom world
he
all away so
of
the
even
going fore-
by
his
devotedly affection
:
MODIFICATIONS
OF, THE
Plate
PRINCIPAL
XVl^.
LINES.
The
their
when
great that he
idols
they rarely if is
remarked,
they worshiped
had
though
women
be
human
they
are
that
they
so
high
of
companion
deeper
Saturn.
in
passion
line
with
vising very
extremely When
hand
of heart
{f-f,Plate
rising
is
from
The
often
in their
the
sensual
sensual
people
calm
individuals
seem
ardor
passionate
subject selfish
less
than
or
have
will
in
more
satisfying his
demonstrative
is the
as
kind
same
any
the
of
selfish
Such
others.
namely, lying right
across
"
a
It
case
very
are
of line
in this
are
to
given by
finger of Saturn.
very
but
passions.
the
of this
and
passionate
the
expressive
from
them
a
Such
excess
being
place is by thy side,the
XX.).
or
and
then, place
fingers gives
and
that,
see
human,
Why,
idol
the
thou
second
more
so
but
it must
shock,
wilt
so
thy faults.
Saturn,
be
never
mount,
that very
from
will
Jupiter.
the
on
is
they
so.
line
side
heart
of
excess
jealousy
; this
outside
the
rising to
is itself in
side, an
to
toward
tendency
Their
more^subdued
life he
more
the
from
and
attachments,
generally admitted are
fall ?
first and
love
heart
of
line
far
divine.
pride is
fact that
mere
are
were
they
sister part of all
the
and
high
subject is
the
of
quieter
home
the
if
the
! when
perfect ; they
not
likelyto
more
the
to
worshiper
idealitygiven by Jupiter
the
affections; in those
the
matters
They
his
Poor
fittingthan
are
are
in
be
than
pride
their
to
its effects ; but
from
clay.
they
pure,
more
the
With
of
99
sometimes, the shock
own
rising between
nature
between
rest
their
feet
of Heart.
recover
thy humanity,
line
The
ever
to
more
will
idols
fall,as
Line
of
excess,
is the
affection
of is still
accentuated
more
and
the hand
reaching
result,and by the
a
base
terrible
a
very
the
long
line
the
first
of
finger. When into
it,it
affection A for
will
the
the
line of
tells of
is much
heart
fretted
by
a
series a inconstancy, flirtations,
crowd of
of little lines
amourettes, but
no
rising lasting
(Plate XX.).
line
of heart
Saturn, chained
from
subject'sopposite
When
the
When
pale
When
low
of heart
is
and
broad,
the
always interfere
on
the
with
broad, gives
an
utter
contempt
sex.
line
down
and
bright red, it
subject is Uase
hand
the
denotes
and
affairs
thus of the
and
close
head.
great violence
of
passion.
indifferent.
to the
line of
head, the heart
Cheiro's
100
When,
it hes
however,
of
head
being
completely
rule
the
line
the
high
the
on
close,the
too
of the Hand.
Lanqiiage
affections
it
the
is the
reverse
that
and
hand,
gives
and
case, cold
hard,
a
is narrowed
space
head
the
by will
and
envious
nature,
so
uncharitable. in
Breaks about
brought
the
A
high
and
;
Saturn,
under
Mercury,
line
of
heart
it is
XVI.),
with
commences
small
a
of
unfailing sign
an
fork
the
on
true, honest
a
Mount
of
and
nature
in love. remarkable
very
low
or
Sun, through pride
the
under
"
caprice.
Jupiter {j-j\ Plate enthusiasm
affection
in
disappointment
under
by fatality;
through folly and When
line tell of
the
the
on
hand.
notice
is to
point
whether
first is the
The
line of heart
the
it shows
best, because
commence
the
happiest
nature.
The
line of
sign
sure
When other
lying
line the
good
that
very
uncertain
branch
one
one
in
disposition,and
that
one
line is
the
and
inclined
of
the
fork
so
denotes
then
make
is
the
a
marital
in affection.
and
branches
a
life.
happy, tranquil
a
to
is
Jupiter, the
on
Saturn, it
on
is not
of the
when
but
;
of
head
thin, it
tells of
coldness
of
of affection.
want
When
quite bare
resting sign
a
affection
Jupiter, the other
on
line of
early portion
branch
fingers,it is
second
happiness
rests
the
during
with
the
toward
happy, through its erratic temperament
When heart
and
down
droops
forks,
fii:st and
fortune,
wide
relations
heart
of
it
in affections
unhappiness
the
between
nature,
that
low
so
bare
thin
and
toward
the
percussion
side
or
of the
hand,
it denotes
sterility. lines
Fine those or
influence
who
the
to
up
thoughts
our
denote
uncrossed
if the
line
of
heart
in affairs
affection
has
the
from
of the
brought
line
heart, and trouble
or
of
head
denote
by being crossed has
been
smooth
fortunate.
and
When is
rising
the
evil
an
nothing A
to
sign
; in
obtain
subject
feeling very
lines
with
of
heart,
head
all matters his no
or
her
of
life
affection
are
such
joined together, it
much
very a
subject would
stick
at
desires.
line of
deep affection.
and
heart, or
Such
a
with
person
very
can,
little,has
however,
be
not
very
the
power
of
sensual, par-
The
ticularly
if
the
less
subject
is
hand he
On
soft. be
not
may
"
Line
a
of
bard
sensual,
Heart.
101
such
hand
but
he
will
a
mark
never
will feel
affect
the
deep
very
affection.
When, that
the
has
become
the
however, subject cold,
has
had
heartless,
has
line such and
been
terrible indifferent.
there,
but
disappointments
has
faded
in
out, affection
it
is
a
that
sign he
CHAPTER
THE
LINE
OF
And .
A
.
doing
No
earthly
in
is
is true,
end
the
So
shall
Notes
all
be
all
in
;
share the
e'en
the for
;
.
such
"
Soul
All-conscious fall.
feeble
sparrow's And
.
the
great.
whole
all
of
success
and
the
to
as
accord
in
high,
and
part
;
reward
should
caring but
good
for
just
a
not
theirs,
"
shall
1
things
have
right, be
what
all
may
crown
the
So
is fate
shapes
men
what
With And
that
that
thus,
For
what
FATE.
.
law
perfect
And
XI.
is fate.
.
Cheiro.
The
line
for
the
on
and
hands, as
to
type
square
tiie
has
without
hand
long
naturally that whereas
a
line
in
as
in
worldly
this
the
on
one
a
conic
quarter
hand.
plays
than
the
line
on
psychic
the
102
with
keeping
of
fate
a
a
great
hand success,
means
of
give
the
small
sees,
hand, line
I it
a
am
means
of
and
nothing,
line
shown
the sees
success
and
of
one
map
fame,
on
sorry
is
student and
fortune
one
similar
bewildered
The
the
latter
conic
point,
simply
to
part; marked
the if
on
of
the
or
philosophic,
writers, though
square
importance
the
This
is useless
sign
Lands,
is less
consequently
line
other
of
destiny,
important
importance
point.
of
an
on
in
more
them;
by It
a
the
the
is concerned.
this
or
line
hand
strong
study.
small
are
on
half
the
successful
most
lines
success
as
of
spatulate,
overlooked
marked
not
the
not
of
that
the
of
palm
type
very
has
explaining
fate
the
important
clearly
one
it has
it
completely
concludes
long
the
apparently
an
far
as
line
upright
less
that
been
on
and
These
significant
most
this
will,
line
Qven
square,
therefore
are
this
fate,
the
remember
must
say,
of
psychic.
often
one
one
a
the
or
of
line
elementary,
conic,
upright
center
the
called
(Plate XIII.), otherwise
consideration
instance, the
fate
is the
Saturnian, In
of
and
fortune, on
the
Cheird's
104
If the than
other
of
the
Mount
of
direction, according If the
line
distinction
and
through their
power
will
people
enormous
of
born
should
the
at
shows
particular
of
Jupiter, It also
than
higher
unusual
relates
their
to
fellows
determination.
and
throw
than
more
Mount
up
point
any
success
hand
mount.
the
climb
to
in that
subject's life.
ambition,
energy, fate
of
center
the
of
portion
or
great
of the
into
come
are
Jupiter, it
namely, toward
the
to
mount
any
it foretells
characteristics
ascend
line
If the
to
to
go
Saturn,
the
of fate
Such
character.
should
itself
fate
line
of the Hand.
Language
usual
in that
branch
a
that
at
success
direction, particular
stage of life. If
Jupiter,
the
be
When
'
will
and
^
most
the
line
very
of fate
If the then
the
far
reaching
toward
ing satisfy-
day
some
and
attack
;
will
blunder
or
of
rise until
troubled
late
success
and
heart, the
joins his
have
success
line
her
or
of
est high-
XIX.).
/
be
will
success
^y^ Plain
in the
if it goes
from
comes
it
of
head.
over
once
line
that
foretells
the
life ; but and
Plate {li-li,
head, it
of
an
commander. the
by
such
it
dividual in-
wishes
his
beyond
however,
when,
affections
instance, if
go
their
finger of Saturn,
on
of
it denotes
Mars,
well
up
the
first half
the
subject's own
the
hand,
all
life all the
of the
energy,
severance, per-
determination.
line
of fate will
success
the
not
Such
into
Jupiter, the subject
surmounted,
smooth. and
and
go
For
abruptly stopped
line
does
it will
far.
too
will
turn
ascend
the
that
palm, cutting
affections
stupidity
some
line
by
difficult, hard,
will be
is
the
through
difficulties will be rest
fate
end
will go
everything
of
stopped by
the
beyond
probably
the
and
mount
own
subject.
a
gratifiedthrough
When
If the a
of such
they together
thwarted
great in
so
runs
will
ambition
by crossing its
leader, his subjects
ruined
be
heart
line
a
and
power,
be
good sign, as
a
terminate
ambition
the
When is not
will
success
even
fate
of
line
the
be
rise from late
won
the in
line
of
life,after
that
head, and a
hard
marked,
line be well
struggle
and
through
the
subject's talents. When
struggle When
it rises success
the
from
will line
be
the
line
of heart
extremely
late in
life,after
a
difficult
won.
rises with
one
branch
from
the
base
of
Luna,
the
other
The
from
Venus,
hand
and
the
love
When
but
success
if
second
the
{aA
double
different A
of
home
life
A
if if
(c?,Plate and
in
in
not
smiles
and
begin if
XXI.).
be
uncertain
of
sign
sure
a
before
the
the
;
and
ups
misfortune
other will
in
the
way
loss
ana
leaves
it
decided wishes
own
one
shadow.
very
excellent
an
This
case
It
sign. is much
more
the
subject
of
think
we
off, it
;
notes de-
change
mean
a
of
position
denotes
and
distinct
two if
important
tears
fate
is
a
which
sign
vegetable
they
go
we
comprise
must
the
of
call
also sum
the
the line
that
at
fate
are
They
existence.
them
for
happy,
feel
the
total
of
of
reverse.
our
lives.
from
;
the
accident
and
eat, drink, cannot
Sunshine
but
adversity from
Luna,
influence,
Plate
very
they
to
square,
influence
(c,
often
the
in
relation
the
as
by date
line
in
loss,
caused
life of
rules
line
through
Luna.
misfortune,
with
the
life
of
same
misfortune
a
kind
really
can
of
of
Mount
the
mark
affects of
the
next
loss
accident line
the
next
marked and
from
danger
from
touching
square
follows
and
loss
any
happiness
fate-line
trouble
means
A
fate-line
the
the
of
protects
foretells
is sometimes
without
a
fate matters.
of
of
line
It
more
feel
side
otherwise,
or
I
to
the
of
XXI.)
side
sign
a
a
People
and
the
is
marriage
do
the
on
such
lead
line
follow.
financial
or
XXL).
they
it is
is
will
line
(", Plate on
cross
island
an
line,
subject's
fate-line
the
on
Mars
travel
and
the
on
XXL).
subject
business,
Plain
the
will
career
life, and
Plate
(m-m,
light
imagination
mounts.
square
money,
the
in
sister
the
of
the
of
with
or
which
careers
in
change
Plate
a,
full
break
accordance
success
irregular, failure
a
the
105
between
sway
other
the
on
portion
complete
in
more
in
is
there
will
destiny
passion and and
When
a
to
and
broken of
downs
subject's
of Fate.
Line
be
it
XXL).
successful, and
sleep,
but but
feel
acutely,
and
shadow,
CHAPTER
THE
LINE
And
there
are
And
some
in
And
some
who,
can't
By
burning
And
those
Oft
and
have
gaining
its
who
wealth,
peace,
in
success
health,
itself
consumes
sun
children
in
decrease.
feeble
more
the
crave
their
their
the
lap
in
success
again
things
all"
in
SUN.
some
other
have
crush
OF
who
some
war,
See Man
XII.
stars,
Hindu
idol's
'neath
their
part
gilded
cars.
Cheiro.
line
The of
brilliancy,
with
the
the
of
fate,
it
the
unless
the
of
from
life
good,
will it
art
sun
the
Mars,
the
without
of
line
head, of
success
the
the
It
the in
of
the
Apollo,
be
mean
lieavily
more
much
as
in
given
line
considered
fate, be
it will
rule
same
as
a
reference
to
the
the
of line
of
life, the
heart.
the
rest
of
of
the
106
given
life
when
lines
of
keenly
the
more
is
it the
a
in
hand;
alive
subject
by
to
will
the have
expression.
of
artistic
is
out,
line
worship
other
that
is
name
success
the
to
this
bears
power
the
the
increases
by
this
as
sun,
distinction
hand
life, with to
of
not
liij.e of
given
from or
line
and
temperament
a
the
rise
devoted
promises
to
line
instance,
The
and
career
of
rest
may line
be
and
the
this.
this
fame
the
psychic,
meaning.
relates the
of
in
work
for
;
and
to
call
to
gives
merely
line
applies
clear and
it lies
called
like
spatulate.
or
work
more
with
Eising
must,
conic,
square
my
appreciation
of
success,
which
on
therefore
in
but
otherwise
of
hand
the
fate
of
XIII.),
philosophic,
and
line
The
lines
of
prefer
artistic,
that
line
on
otherwise
Plain
the
line
accordance
the
or
the
expressive good
(Plate
on
line I
sun
type
marked similar
of
pursuits.
the
hand
beautiful.
Mount
of
Luna,
artistic, it "With
the
denotes
the
other
MODIFICATIONS
OF
Plate
THE
PRINCIPAL
XIX.
LINES.
The
Rising from of
fate, and
that
to
time
gives
more
brilliancy
or
the
class
in art
From
dependent certain
107
the
increases
by the line
promised
success
whatever
from
in
it is marked
date
from
"
in poetry,
Rising
the
upon
Luna
of
line
it
and
being
(e-e,Plate
in
class this line
to
than
"
what
call
to
the
way
relating
as
the
it
by the line
shown
talent
promises
the
help
of
line
of
head, and is
success
and
success
In
of others.
influenced
so
shown,
this
fortunes
the
by
distinction,largely it is
case
of those
never
we
a
come
XXI.),
of
head, however, it is
literature,and the Plain
upon
implies
name
determine
the fancies
sloping
misleading
riches.
Mount
with a
depends
itself,to
or
less
its
as
"
of success,
sign
With
of the
things
of
inclined
more
denote
to
cess suc-
purely imaginative order.
Mars, it promises sunshine
after
tears,
success
difficulty. Rising
until the
the
success,
second
half
from
artistic
things,
of the
talents
line
and
of
heart
looking
distinction
more
is
head, there
of
caprice
no
subject
alone
it
merely
denotes
it
from
other
people in
its
factor, but
being
nection con-
not
of life is reached.
the
Rising
it denotes
line of
the
from
with
and
It
upon
in contact
after
success
the
and
accurate
hand
of
whether
fate,it
distinction
more
of art.
or
line of
of Sun.
things will greatly improve.
on
It is far
Apollo
in
the
Line
and
at
the in
influence
a
great
for art
taste
purely practical standpoint the
world
at
that
late
date
life. If the
Saturn,
a
inclined
third very
of
marked,
a
with
lines
multiplicity have
with
sun
everything
great tendency
position,
Many
of
"
in
length
such the
a
to
the
second,
formation
talents, the
the
finger
the
makes
riches, and
of
subject the
even
peculiarity of this line is that it generally gives, when
of
sufficient
and on
sensitiveness,but
toward
line
exceptionally straight social
nearly equal
life.
chief
The
long line
gamble
to
chances
finger be
of
head
it denotes
the
when love
combined of
well
with
an
attaining riches,
power.
the
ideas
of
Mount will
patience
Sun
interfere
to win
either
show with fame
an
all or
extremely artistic nature, but success.
renown
Such
subjects
(Plate XXI.).
never
Cheird's
].08
A
star
A
of
An
of
that
On
no
V
hollow
a
hand
one's
a
lasts,
a
of
sign
of
preservation (^,
position
be
can
will
the
against Plate
and
such
generally
and
that
sign
found.
certainty.
position
and
loss
Hand.
finest
very
cases
name
means
hand
how
matter
on
their
line
of
they graves
of
of
that
indicates
recognition
the
heads.
the
absence
complete
Perhaps their
island
such
is
sun
line
the
in
the
of
XXI.). for
name
occur
attacks
the
through
length scandal
XXI.).
The
artistic
the
of
to
this
on
perhaps is
line
reference
in
{h, Plate
is
success
the
on
island
time
find
lasting
square
enemies
line
this
on
and
Brilliant
Language
line
such
the
will
be
all
of
sun
people,
world
laid
the
power.
on
though
difficult
honor
deserve
may
loses
sun
the
they to
and
wreaths
an
otherwise
may
that
work
Such
gain. fame,
talented
will
should
and
hard,
will
individuals,
rarely have
achieve
crowned
it.
Cheiro's
110
into
through
or
in
If red flat
at the
Mount
it foretells life,
color,and
of
Mercury
weakness
some
and
broad, it will be weak
and
ning run-
disease of
action
of
the
circulation.
bad
and
the line of
pale in
If very
the heart. heart
the line of heart
risingfrom
Wlien
Hand.
Language of the
when color,particularly
it leaves the line of
heart,with small,
nails,the trouble will be active heart-disease. When
in
red
very
spots, it denotes
a
tendency in the system
fever.
toward
When
twisted and
When
formed
In
Plate
small
little
biliousness irregular,
and
in littlestraightpieces, bad
islands,with
long,filbert
liver
complaints. XIX
Plate digestion(i-i,
nails,danger
to
lungs
and
,).
chest
(i-i,
XX.).
The
mark,
same
the
with
kind
same
of
nail,but broad, throat trouble.
"
(See Nails,"Part I.,Chapter XIII.) When
heavilymarked, joiningthe lines of heart and head, and
elsewhere,it threatens health,but it is a good one
upon
crossingthe
hand.
It will thus
be
mark
seen
because
that
the indications afforded
and illnesses, for
brain-fever.
straightline of hepatica lying
A
for brain
it
down
gives a
the hand more
though the student him
for confirmation
instance,to the chained
of head
not found
of
life-linefor
and troubles,
wiry kind
can
by the hepatica,yet he to other illnesses,
to the
must
portionsof
conjunctionwith the study of the hepatica.
must
give robust
of health than
depend
naturallydelicate which nails,
not
may
very
largely
look
for other
the
hand, as,
health,to the line
always be noted
in
XIV.
CHAPTER
THE
Via
The not
often
by
right
and Venus
LASCIVA
Lasciva,
the
to
is
the
oif
run
into
palm
the
if
natural
the on
the
of
LINE
OF
all
It
that
of
account
psychic
for hands
be a
and
vivid
by than
on
of
a
much-used
of
It
and
word,
others.
Ill
should
gives
action
into
the
(W,
Plate
found
on
seven
types. face
the
sometimes
distinct
Mount
of
XVII.).
which
person
feeling
of
science
has
"coincidence."
philosophic, Its
It
the
keenly
position
Mount
the
through
when a
the
of
runs
even
nature,
intuitional
warnings
the
from
impressionable
and
hand
excesses
often
more
other
an
It
hepatica. it
is
XIII.),
INTUITION.
Luna.
influences,
its
(Plate
position
a
the
by
semicircle
clear
purely
any
life
the
such
across
is
any
of
found
dreams
that
on
Mount
the
denotes
strange
than
that
can
surroundings
others, to
almost
but
(Plate XII.)
psychic,
is
hepatica,
marked. to
the
hand to
intuition
of
conic, and
Mercury the
line
with In
running
health-line
sister
wrist.
length
THE
The
the
INTUITION.
OF
confounded
the
but
LINE
THE
called
generally
passions,
it shortens
AND
otherwise
and
found,
force
VIA
or
is found
with is
hepatica sensitive
presentiment never
of
been more
for able on
XV.
CHAPTER
GIRDLE
THE
OF
Girdle
The semicircle the
and
Its
here
will
study
touchy
little
over
and
THE
THEEE
broken
that
second
BEACELETS.
and
fingers
kind
unbroken
or
of
finishing between
it except
such
on
is
It
it
the
denotes
certainly
in
highly
a
gives
conic
broad,
and
the
thick
with
highly
suality sen-
hand. little
A
psychic.
sensitive,
easily offended,
moods, strung,
and
temperament,
nervous
unhappy
most
a
indicate
to a
on
associated
rule
changeable
natures
sign
found
as
a
as
this
when
hands
mark
things.
found
never
toward
tendency
despondency.
People
this
possessing
enthusiasm in the
but
unbroken
hysteria
and
have to
this
that
natures,
when
and
ascribed
usually
is
prove
intellectual
is
XIII.)
first
I
that
state
generally
domain
real
the
AND
SATUEN,
fourth.
must so
OF
(Plate
Venus
between
rising
third I
of
EING
THE
VENUS,
mood
their
engages in
moment
one
"
of
capable
are
that
anything
over
same
mark
the
rising
of
height
highest
they
but
fancy,
the
to
spirits, the
pitch
of
rarely twice
are
miserable
next
and
despondent. When
the with
contact
subjects
are
be
marred
through
the
peculiarly
exacting,
and
want
of
side
line
would
man
the
over
goes
the
will
marriage
that
girdle
as
hand
{h-h, Plate
marriage
hard
live
to
in
and
by
there
as
of
happiness
If
on
hand, in
stars
are
the
Such
man's
a
in
comes
temperament.
with.
wife
a
the
of
doing
so
the
XVI.),
peculiarities
virtues
many
the
of
the
universe. THE
The
good and to
Ring
sign I have
cut
off
to
never
the
of
Saturn
have
on
yet Mount
(Plate the
XII.)
hand.
observed of
EING
Fate
is
mark
a
I have
that in
SATUEN.
OF
were
a
112
in
seldom
watched
closely
they such
very
any
peculiar
way way
and
found, people
possessing
successful. that
such
is not
It
people
seems
never
a
it,
MODIFICATIONS
OF
THE
Plate XX.-
PRINCIPAL
LINES.
The
gain
any
Girdle
of
point
that
deal
great
it
people
of
work
and
give
bracelets the
reading
noticed
the
always
was
to
Afterwards there
found later
have
years,
by
my
many
I
is
interesting
attention
it
for
to.
to
notice,
I
what
the
of
for
took
find
always
a
these
of
continuity
pose pur-
truth after
this
this
and out
study I
case,
by
told
me
a
in
in
in
in first
my
early one
thought
reference
XVI.),
of
ternal in-
chilaren. I
way,
superstition.
hospitals, to
the
the
to
a
through
being
est near-
practical
more
life,
into
Plate
(m-m,
bearing a
have
the
relation
the
one
I
rising
almost
in
going
deserves
their
and
ailments, and
recorded,
sequently con-
worth.
be
the
at
one
arch
an
in
what
may
health
of
that
bracelet,
wrist,
in
is, however,
taught
weakness
point
to
the
importance
and
first
instance,
in
much There
been
shape
up
it
has
XXV.)
of
the
on
of
attached
bears
had
high
have
that
strong
mean
case
consultants
significance
they
of
watching
give
now
Another
it
deal
convinced
become
defined,
great
a
in
I
life, when
of
them,
to
position
as,
I
as
itself.
regard
saw
"
113
temperament
Plate
also
hand
the
consultant
body
want
consider
not
it
rose
my
the
my
was
what
from I
in
it
warn
of
organs
I
such
(See
truth.
the
when
when
particularly
palm,
In
that
of
of
principally
and
with
do
with
deal
great
a
hand,
point
this,
Bracelets.
BKACELETS.
I
study
with
"
but
THEEE
XIII.)
the
peculiar
observe
to
in
or
contains
always
I
lines,
and
strange
(Plate
do
to
half-way.
up
Their
desire.
or
Three
the
and
Saturn,
for
plans,
THE
The
of
everything
ideas
always
Ring
may
have
big
they
that
the
they
may
"
full
Venus,
bracelets robust
a
manner
is
that,
if
constitution, the
point
well and I
and this have
clearly again, called
XVI.
CHAPTER
THE
OF
LINE
What
if the
matter
The
MAKRIAGE.
license
paid
Unless
love
'Twere
better
they
"
link
words
each
be
heart
wed
|
heart,
to
lives
those
keep
said,
not
are
apart. Cheiro.
Of
the
that
say
details
important
What
is
that
mark
must
be
fact of
the
of
can
being foretold
except as
thus
can
when
strong.
not
to
other
singled
the that into in
is
should
case
may
surround an
the
the
important.and
as
be
a
be,
ordinary what
time
set
only
can
If
any
room
that 114
apart be
one
has nower
marked,
can
by
power
is,
and
what
years
to
a
and
so
life
just or
marry, to
the
permanent
magnetize the
portant im-
marriage,
the
referring
why to
events
all
to
as
life
explain
Now, if
even
on
one's
answered
the
had.
liaisons^
influence in
have
respect
is known
the
the
ence influ-
that,
coeur^
It
the
influence.
in
case
what
from
divided
they
such
affaires de
XIII.
registers
be
be, is
recognize
not
influence
certainly
that
natural
many
may
Plate
life, it follows
is
esting inter-
as
case
by
merely
with
such
give
the
as
does
of
one's
should that
us.
room,
it "
to
sorry
study.
hand
kind
in
marriage
just
the
am
naturally
to
shown
as
accordance
event
and
the
I
this
marriage,
religious
or
found
of
Mercury
is in
an
out
of
lives, what
that
noticed endeavor
side
lines of
it is also
; and
Why
iron
all
barely
clearly, that
our
always
there
as
over
cheiromancy,
on
therefore this
or
it civil
hand,
liaison
brought of
stated
important
the
mysteries
bit
Mount
I have
be
marry,
magnet other
the
the
by
influences on,
on
and
so
and
advance,
as
people
will
with line
be
written have
or
I
the
ceremony,
produced,
marriage
in
a
ignored
and
stated,
different
effect
be
marks
first
been
connection
known
or
have
point.
in
possible
as
that
have
all
almost and
mere
books
many
every
connection
Cheird's
116
then
and
Luna
runs
into
When
the
line of influence
the
person
the
subject marries
than
the
fate-line,the
marriage will be
the
more
is stronger than will
have
the
greater
subject's line and
power
of
fate,then
individuality
more
subject.
The
mark
happiest
line lies close
breaks,
the
marriage
curves
the line
When
and
the
whom
of
it
the
(/-?,Plate
influence-
XX.). out straight,with-
be
kind.
any
subject
is when
should
Mercury
toward
upward, the
curves
with
evenly
runs
the Mount
on
line of fate
the
on
drops downward
or
with
person
marriage
irregularitiesof
or
crosses, it
^- When
of
fate-line
to the
line of
The
that
the
real affection.
than
capricious fancy
and
up
of the Hand.
Language
the
is married
line of heart, it foretells
will die
is not
possessor
first (j, Plate
likely to
XX.). at
marry
any
time.
from
health
bad When
of the
line
the
long, gradual the
'When some
heart, the
person
to will
with
line has
ill health in
island
an
cross
brought
the
over
or
sudden
will
cause
the
married
in
trouble
subject small
hair-lines
fine
dropping the illness
by
on
marries.
by accident
die
with
it foretells trouble
a
gradual
curve,
great
very
of
droops
is married
subject
marriage is distinct,but
of
the line
it toward
and
a
line
the
When
center
death
the at
or
life,and
a
the
curve, ; but
the
person there
when
is
end.
portion, it denotes
any
while
separation
the
island
lasts.
the
of
center
This
XIX.).
the
When be
the
divides
hand, it
is all the
{k-U, Plate
of Mars
should
line
the
When
line
warned
at
the
tells
of
end
divorce
certain
more
into
if
drooping
a
or
a
a
sloping toward
judicial separation (j, Plate
line
fine
fork
from
cross
Plain
it to the
XIX.). is full not
to
of
little islands
marry.
Such
a
and mark
lines,the
drooping is
sign of the
a
subject
greatest
un-
happiness. When
full of little islands
and
forked, it is again
a
sign
of
in
unhappiness
marriage. When
the
line breaks
When
the
line
in
two, it denotes
a
sudden
break
in the
married
life. of
marriage
sends
an
offshoot
on
to
the
Mount
of
Sun
The
into the line of sun,
and
and
When, the
hand
will
its possessor some
way
and
toward
will
it appears
marry
some
of distinction,
one
famous.
down
it goes
lose
line of
the
cuts
position through
sun.
marriage {i-i,
is
whose
on
fine line
a
opinions
into
by
and
women "
say,
You
the
have
so-called
truths
the greatest The
marriage.
marriage has
no
allow
even
divorce
the
blood-money
courts
crush
and
degrade of burden have
and ? not
torture-chamber 12
are
such
to
the
back
service
money of
if he
is,alas
the How
of the
must
divorce
?
he
hearts the
whom
would
to
be
sealed,
as
half
half
of
marry
again unless
of the pope," and
long, how How
long men
will
were
or
brutes
because
noble
this
and
hand
reality
throne lip-servicedecustom
beasts
women
together because
of their once,
is in
slavery of
live
not
certain
on
the other
which
will this
exist and
women
who
long
on
that
coffers of the state
the
joined together,
Church, equally inconsistent,will and
and
if the into
dinned
Grod hath
the
ceremony
divorced
words
^
they
so
that
so-called
women
^1
generally
mockeries,
are
into
men
tell that
of woe,
vows
"
entered
a.s
all,"and
often, that
their freedom, Men
deeply
go
know
yet the last
heart?
and
men
to
palmist'slips are
half
"Those
"
^
They
speak
nature, making
buy
of the
"
study.
its children
mediation
into
side
incre'^ible what
now
hide
to
! too
divorce
to "
better
to
did
allows
are,
of its citizens.
long
The
Catholic
pair
the
as
hearts.
unsuitable, and
The
the
marriagei
to
or
of this
well
gaiety
Church
bridegroom
pour
destroy How
of
of all
out
touching the
on
palmistry
It is almost
cloaked, that
through the
the
almost
marriage
on
day.
may
their
masks
mockery
and
you
of
falsehoods
the wretched
the
in this work
confessor, but but
turned
special occasions
they
much,
so
put asunder."
man
cuts
'^'
during the pursuit
me
Protestant
of the bride
ears
and
-
of the present
father
are
after
aifection
relating to marriage,
laws
read
faces
smiling
that
the
told
of the
and
opposition
-
province
the greatest secrets
those
and
running parallelwith deep
some
women
have
unravel
obstacle
great
a
downward
grows
it appears.
my
to
as
and
men
of
hand
within
It is not
mount
XVIII.).
there
marriage-line, it tells person
top of the
the
marriage, there will be
(i,Plate
When
let
person
deep line from
of
marriage
are
a
contrary,
whose
a
line
my
it tells that in
117
of Marriage.
XXI.). When
the
the
on
person
Plate
generally on
Line
dread who
of that were
\
Cheird's
118
the
much,
garments,
Let
them
and
study
we
if
but
d-^'en
;
preach
good
pride,
;
in
not
honor's
for
for
s'^^lf
they
are
that
serve,
may
draws
spun.
they nigh,
till
as
the
be
they
as
live
helpers task
is
all
the
husband
and
world
ing fear-
their
very
deceive
to
to
the
scene,
than
world
seeing
children, the
to
closer
the
the
the
closer
into
into
done,
nature
of
for
truth
be
to
do
as
likewise.
Let
And
for
lastly,
part
of
let
those
those
to
;
them
redeeming
goodness
that
less
costume.
responsible
truth's.
in
fiction
of
but
gain,
but
servants
of
or
chance
a
them
and
more
flattery
them
sake
the
chil-
the
sake
them
give
life
in
which
"
of
sons
of
of
art
teach
sake,
"
they
of
them,
out
give
but
for
goodness
honor
the
mistakes, children,
not
and
out
all, read
for
do
they
as
them
of
faces
pale
going going
and
once
make
they
outside
around
shame,
them,
see
"
women,
give
stakes;
as
edging
did
father
and
closer
wrapping
parents'
another
one
faith,
little,
too
of
drink
to
men
marry,
is
do
the
are
arena,
buried
loving
did,
""
of
cloak
the
mother
so
Hand.
often
husband,
the
the
in
ghosts
too
/)f
how
honor
fearing
spectators
reincarnated
\
of
wife
the
wife,
the
like
m'
souls
the
of
"
hating all,
and
truth
of
queens
Language
the
world.
till
and
humanity
the
And
universe
daughters
so
may
is
they
finished,
of
the
be
till
till
the
world, the
end
destiny
CHAPTEE
XVII.
CHILDREN,
So .
oft
bear,
to
.
Thro'
early hours,
The
Or
of
story
of
father's
a
bear To
All
that
load,
stagger life
but
With
care.
! how
me
hard
heavy
that
and,
on,
years,
tears
drunken
Ah
To
later
thro'
mother's
a
cross,
death,
all
death
but
alone
to
virtue
blind
eyes
find
stumbling,
loss, !
Cheiro.
To
have,
tell seems
than
the
details
Owing have
study the
accuracy
been
largely
well
the In
can
difficulties first
the
touch
of
development the
as
The of
the
line to
the
lines
portion accurately
of
of
be
in
do
the
with
the
of
For
Venus
these
out
clearly, but
the
hand
are
also
the
mount
make
out
whether
in
faint.
touch, such
fine are
their
children 119
this
with
person
the
time
any
as
knowing
such
of
a
point, I details
many
possible,
as
point.
a
hand
that
a
very
poor
to
have
dren chil-
a
the
fine case
that
it will
position
play
of
an
requires
these so
important
that
lines, by on,
one
part
end
scope micro-
a
found
be
and
appearance,
will
it
the
from
lines
upright
so
such
By by
requires
large.
the
are
them
they
and
full
as
of
at
to
ful wonder-
more
on
portions
likely
likely
cheiromancy.
give
way
instance, so
of
explanation all
of
is not
mount
a
lucid
a
bit
credited to
clear
as
is
or
this, however,
pursuit
book,
knowledge
Sometimes
marriage.
in
had, one
do
been
this
so
way
children
to
To
I have
acquired. of
it is not
the
to
has
one
lines.
writing to
Mount
relating
make of
the
do, but
which
thorough
must
to
given
usually
lie in a
children
main
with
that
person
lines
is
endeavor
place,
this
on
the
by
requested,
I shall
permissible.
of
thing
given than
to
number
wonderful
very
a
careful
more
the
accurately
all the can
in
the
Cheird's
120
life
be
the
of
subject
male
otherwise
or
if
;
the
of
will
they
Hand.
delicate
be
if
strong;
or
will
they
female.
or
leading
The
Language
lines
Broad
fine,
;
lines
these
to
marked
clearly
are
regard
males
denote
they
When
with
points
are
lines,
narrow
denote
they
follows
as
:
females.
children
healthy
strong,
;
when
.^^
if
faint,
very
When
delicate
in
they
the
first
its
early
When
ending
When
one
important
of
part
life,
the
at
line
the
to
they
lines,
wavy
line
the
if
but
is
reverse.
island,
little
a
line
the
the
are
is
well
the
marked
child
will
farther
it
be
very
will
tually even-
health.
good
have
The
are
is
and
longer than
parent
numbers
death
island,
all
run
be
superior the
the
from
will
the
result.
the
to
rest,
child
one
will
be
more
others.
outside
of
the
in
marriage-line
toward
the
hand.
On
such
a
the
case
be
in
able
go
they will
man
affectionate
extremely marks
hand
man's
a
to
into
a
proceed here.
be
nature
superior
his
or
just
as
a
rule,
From
these
her
pursuit
as
clear
fond
exceptionally
;
way. in
often
are
however,
as
children
of
the
observations
of
other
a
on
I
minute
and
think
details
have
will
hand
woman's
the
shows
an
the
student
which
in
but
woman's,
will
I
not can-
MODIRCATIONS
OF
PRINCIPAL
THE
Plate
XXI.
LINES.
Cheird's
122
It
of
that
really means a
in
man
every
terrible
some
part
climax,
The either
the
work
the
life and
and
moment,
position
into
cutting
subject will in this
"
may
with
case
crowned
Saturn
who
one
star and
wealth
the
on
ON
Mount
price has
in peace
perhaps
STAR
position, but,
late ; the
riches, it
of
THE
with
is that
almost
with
as
OF
with
been
Certain
too
it
star
mount,
Jupiter,
on
of those
one
through
who some
SUN.
gives the brilliancy of
XIX.)
Such
happiness.
and
is,however, happiness.
the
others, that
it
in this
When
has
of
way
that, though
come
health,
or
gives great by the
case
subject will be brought
the
people, without
wealthy
wealth
dearly paid in the
or
contentment
denotes, like
rich
however,
great fame
and
high
too as
in
celebrity,but the
on
the
will be
it is connected
hand of
case
found
The
star
brilliancy the
in the
and
success
type
it denotes
of
;
a
little above
Madame
himself
being rich
in
the
in
talent
and
the
middle
work
line in
of the
Bernhardt,
Sarah
ON
THE
of the
OF
MOUNT
Mount
of
science,business,
hand, and, association
by the
formed
an
of sun,
art.
it denotes
It should
line is its best
impression
of
not
tion, posiwhose
XXVII.).
STAR
center
or
through
Plate
on
THE
mount
the
goods.
When,
to
off the
distinction
THE
(2?,Plate
rule, without
a
mind.
it
mount,
contact
hand
a
and
doom.
like the
contact
gains
MOUNT
Sun
of the
probably
gives
never
of the
world's
be
be
may
dramatic
some
"
in
he
or
for
cast
man
fate.
The
side
a
position resplendent with
brought. into
be
Judas,
have
fingers. This,
the
destiny;
a
will
but
on
of
be
brilliancy,some
star
or
he career
for the
THE
too
life
king
history, but
make terrible
of
unrivaled a
side
that
denotes
drama
terribly fatalistic life,but that
some
fate,a plaything
of
for the
"
second
at
the
some
majesty of death
child
a
in
all his
Saviour, but terrible
subject will have
tlie
way
of the Hand.
Language
as
in the
with
or
MERCURY.
Mercury the
power
(g, Plate of
XIX.)
denotes
ing eloquence, accord-
foregoing examples, by
people distinguished in those
the
side
walks
of the of life.
The
Star.
123 ,
THE
The that
star
the
on
through
ON
STAR
of
Mount
MOUNT
THE
under
Mars
MARS.
{j, Plate
Mercury
the
fortitude
and
patience, resignation,
OF
.
XVIII.), denotes honors
greatest
will
be
gained. On
the
distinction warfare
opposite side
of the
and
will
celebrity
in which
the
THE
The
star
system,
to
in
drowning, however,
is that
this
the
when
be
fact
revolver
or
have
may
that
the
the star affections
is
center once
and
more
When with
of
more
ON
MOUNT
OF
THE
highest point of the
On
lying by the side
"
hand
man's
a
the
the
same
on
such a
.often
so
in
a
ing, mean-
and
the the
on
my
mount,
dreamy and
head,
that
inative imagresult
hands
of
people lose sight of In
these
days
the
vogue.
VENUS.
(?, Plate
of Venus
Mount
favorable, but
and
of
idea,
the
of fashion.
out
is much
successful
or
it relates
that
this
to
belief,but
morphine
STAR
of
line
the
to
is another
There
found
former
going
them
the
of
hold
not
this mount
on
been
has
is
of
do
is,according
given rise
star
suicides
passions.
opposition will rob
a
balance
this star
in all affairs of love
success
be
or
in
the
overdose
I
have
may
ends
the
signal battle
a
qualities
cheiromants.
to
THE
In
other
given rise for
water
the
ruin
Because
insanity.
suicides, it the
will
the
faculties.
sign, which
line of head
faculties will
with
Jupiter, great
LUNA.
XVIII.)
from
celebrity arising
accordance
to
(A;,Plate
Luna
imaginative
the
through
life,or
OF
MOUNT
THE
of
martial
a
under
engaged.
be
ON
Mount
sign of great
a
namely,
the
on
STAR
of Mars
Mount
from
arise
will
subject
the
hand,
this time
in
relation
sign indicates
woman's
hand.
XVIII.) to
the
extraordinary No
jealousies or
spoils of conquest.
of the
mount,
people distinguished for their
success
the
of such
amours
in the
arena
a
of love.
subject will
Cheiro's
124
Language
THE
The
star
in
fortune
thumb
In
the
is
by
this
with
clear
certain
weak,
the
star
portion may
of
mentality
should
could
have
line
be,
the
it
and
is
little
of
impossible discretion
mind
in
the
power
be
on
be
meaning
seek
to
of
the
part
indications
with
keeping stands
on
with
to
a
this, that
with
of
for.
the
understood
dispense the
in
It
dealing
must
to
good
great
phalange
that
hand.
or
In
it
signs
naturally
head.
study,
lesser
borne
of
first
will.
the
must
character
general
of
be
sign
lesser
undeveloped
directions
amount
the
the
other
every
it
gives
fingers the
on
of
of
important
most
remarks
by
that
instance,
the
the
and
strength
subject's
important
shown
a
of
one
foregoing
tendencies
for
the
of
phalanges attempted,
or
Hand.
FINGERS.
THE
ON
outer
or
touched
through
star
denoted
tips
anything
success
The
the
on
STAK
the
of
the
the
reason,
hand
taining con-
indeed
as
however
exercise
student.
the
of
a
CHAPTER
XIX.
THE
The
in
one
indicates
It
sign. the
position
will
is
Jupiter
of
life
the
it denotes
On
pursuit The
On of
A
influence himself On
;
from
cross
on
of
death
Sun
it
be
base,
late
evil,
fatalistic
is
terrible
a
at
least
life
early in
;
the this
when
the
on
affection the
summit
the
of
line of
the
life.
when
by
the
line
itself
in
the
life.
of
tendencies
sign
line
cross
of
on
of
great
one
with
touching
but
Mount
when
commencement
when
accident;
by
the
it will
XVIII.),
the
of
of
fate,
the
ter cen-
in
disappointment
the
riches.
or
and
Plate
the
to
on
case
feature in
is, however"
Mount
of
as
a
rule, indicates
dishonest
a
duplicity.
to
Mars
under
it
Mercury
Mount
the
on
Mercury,
Mars
of
denotes
under
the
dangerous
tion opposiand
force, violence,
Jupiter
quarrels. the
the
{I, Plate the
violent
of
the
at
{n,
inclined
Mount
hand,
down
the
close
that
change
a
There
the
time
favorable
a
sometimes
it indicates
the
as
it, namely,
strange
about
the
Saturn
the
on
enemies
death
even
art,
one
the
and
of
fame, cross
of
and
especially
A
found
trouble.
by have
to
is
When
it increases
Mount
and
nature,
of
This
Luna.
of
side
of
mount,
of
life.
seldom
danger,
position
roughly
life ;
Mount
the
the
is
about
sign
this
In
Mount
the
danger
this
good
a
individual.
middle
the
is
it denotes
toward
in
On
the
that
and
mount,
into
and
star,
brought
one
it
the
to
disappointment,
XVIII.).
come
influence
of
which
from
rises
fate
life, but
(m, Plate
affection
opposite
trouble,
or
in
position
Jupiter
will
is the
cross
CEOSS.
Mount
of
Mount
imagination.
Moon
the
The
under
man
with
the
line
such
a
of
head
sign
will
denotes deceive
a
fatal
even
XVI.). of
Venus,
when
heavily 125
marked,
it indicates
some
great
Cheiro's
126
trial
fatal
or
life,
of
line
A
in
a
change
the
relates
to
a
Above
to
denotes
destiny
;
of
lying
but
in
on
the
one's
other
lying
close
the
to
relatives.
near
and
fate,
and
between
it
side
of
the
relatives,
by
career
and
the
hand
life-line
and
next
means
to
Luna
journey.
a
line
the
touching
with
in
opposition
disappointment
and
line
small
very
quarrels
the
of
Hand.
of
head,
it
foretells
wound
some
or
accident
head.
the
By
the
Running line
side
when
but
;
and
troubles
Mars,
of
in
it
of
the
by
cross
Plain
the
tells
it
affection
of
influence
the
of
Language
of
heart,
side
of
into
the
the
the
death
line
of
of
line
of
some
sun,
fate, loved
disappointment disappointment one.
in
position. in
money
;
and
over
tiio
CHAPTER
XX.
SQUARE.
THE
The It is
protected
When of
the
the
will
square
is still
outside
Saturn, When
or
WTien
anxiety
danger
some
When
the
line
brought
object
the
even
from
resting
in
fall into
the
line be the Mount
all kinds
of
a
in the center, the
loss.
directly under
well-formed
itself,and
the Mount
it is
square,
tells of
a
sign of
terrible
some
Saturn, it foretells
under
through
runs
{j,Plate
broken of
strain
a
tion preserva-
the
danger
a
that
at
Mount
it denotes
square, under
Saturn,
heavy
some
some
fatalityto
XXI.).
Plate point (/v,
by the of
through
it denotes
square,
the
protection from
XXI.). denotes
passions {I, Plate
XXL).
Venus,
line
a
life
inside
Venus on
a
When
through
brought of
all
square
particular moment.
life-line passes
center
brain
affections.
affection
trouble
one
with
accident.
line of head
heart
on
the
the
the
through
on
serious
very
menaced.
connected
sense,
ject sub-
the head.
to
if the
square
yation
by
on
of one's
When
of
right
the
it denotes
square,
worldly
a
that
danger
the line of fate breaks
from
through
runs
the
whatever
only touching it,and
that
at
rising above
from
a
preservation from
to
it shows
well-formed
line goes
when
protection
preservation
of
if the
line,but
the line of head
of work
A
the
from
subject's life in
Even
of
it denotes
strength and
trouble
sign
a
interesting of the lesser signs,
most
preservation," because
through
runs
loss,but
or
of the
one
of
particular point
of fate
averted.
be
When
death,
that
at
line
disaster
danger
the
mark
greatest crises in the
financial
of
"the
called
usually is
(Plate XV.) is
square
of
it tells
passion, but
that
will
the
always
preser-
When
subject manage
will to
escape.
When,
however, lying outside
the 127
line
of
life and
touching it from
the
Cheird's
128
Plain
the
of
Mars,
such
a
place
the
Hand.
imprisonment
means
seclusion
or
from
world.
When
arising
other
in
square
a
of
Language
the
on
the
through
On
Jupiter,
On
Saturn,
On
the
On
Mercury,
On
Mars,
On
Luna, line,
from
the
from
from
from
for
the
desire
an
instance,
that
for
through of
excess
a
line
from
protection
a
any
excess
:
the
subject.
shadows
the
life.
fame.
mercurial
restless,
danger
mount
of
fatality
the
from
the
ambition
the
denotes
square
of
qualities
from
Sun,
as,
the
mounts
temperament.
enemies.
imagination, of
travel.
or
from
the
evil
effects
of
some
MODIFICATIONS
OF
PRINCIPAL
THE
Plate
XXII.
LINES.
""l"
CHAPTER
THE
island
The
the
of
is not
hand
which
on
frequently relates
to
as
It is
; as, for
heart-disease
inherited.
to the line
or
tion por-
interestingto notice that it
instance,heavily marked
of the line of
in the center
on
the
head, it denotes
an
mentality.
in relation to
hereditary weakness When
sign,but it only relates
it is found.
distinct mark
one
SPOT.
THE
CIRCLE,
hereditary evils
line of heart it denotes When
THE
ISLAND,
fortunate
a
XXI.
on
the line of
life,it denotes
When
on
the line of
fate,some
When
on
the line of sun,
illness and
delicacy at that particular
point.
through scandal When
line
Any to the
attendant
line
to the
same
position and
generally
name,
forming
which
from
island is
an
a
bad
indication
in relation
it is found.
the Mount
on
serious illness.
a
of Venus
passion to the
man
running into
who
woman
or
an
inland foretells influences
the
(2),Plate XVIIL). A
will
or
on
line
disgrace and trouble life
health,it foreshadows
running into
part of the hand
An
it foretells loss of
matters.
{h,Plate XXI.).
the line of
on
heavy loss in worldly
forming
line of
kind and
influence and will be
of
a
crossingthe hand
marriage foretells that
the life and
cross
trouble
island and
an
line
when
it
at
the Mount that
of Venus
particularpoint
bring disgrace to the marriage (r,Plate XVIII.). to
run
direct
evil influence
an
the
line of
the
runs
barrier to the
into and success
it
intentions
talents and
the
bars
of the
bad
heart,some
; when
disgrace to the affections
will
from
to the line of
runs
into
line of
129
will
bring
head, some
nel; disgracefulchan-
some
fate,some
subject at the date
join each other'.
influence
If the
evil influence
at which
the lines
Cheiro's
130
island
An
which
on
of
any
the
of
Mount
On
the
On
Saturn
On
the
On
Mercury
of
the
Mars
On
Luna,
On
Venus,
a
in
weakness a
the
mount
on
{Jc,Plate
found
If the
the
success
On
the
Mount
point
working
subject
break
will,
as
A
spot
A
bright-red blow
some
to
succeed,
of
the
particularly
in
power
influenced
imagination.
the
by
of
sport
fancy
and
will
CIRCLE.
it
is
circle
is
mark.
favorable
a
On
fortunate.
it denotes
be
it were,
able
line, clear
to
round
go
from
danger
important
not
the
Sun,
other
any
This
it tells
mount
and
drowning.
indicates
it
himself round
that
circle
a
that
misfortune
from
in
at
without
particular "
in
being
other
able
get free. SPOT.
spot
the on
sign of temporary the
line
of
illness. indicates
head
a
shock
or
taken
to
injury
from
fall.
or
black
A
bright-red the
art.
subject.
any
generally
A
on
the
and
THE
is
for
talent
cowardice.
out
the
which
the
and
through
of
Luna
of
touching
he
words,
in of
the
the
subject.
changeable
spirit and
Mount
position
against
When
ambition.
XX.).
on
only
and
science.
or
THE
and
of
qualities
pride
the
too
easily led
person
the
to
person
weak
a
the
it weakens
Sun
business
to
it shows
On
misfortune
it makes
relation
it weakens
Jupiter
brings
it
Mount
in
passion
to
the
injures
mounts
Hand.
it is found.
anything
is
of the
Language
or
line
blue
spot
spot of
life
on
some
denotes
the
a
illness.
nervous
line
of
illness
of
health the
is
nature
usually of
fever.
mean
fever,
XXII.
CHAPTER
"
THE
The of
THE
GKILLE,
LA
TEIANGLE,
is very
grille (Plate XY.)
tlie
hand.
It
and
mount,
indicates
especially
of
the
in
often
obstacles that
means
subject
MYSTIQUE,"
CROIX
and
seen,
accordance
obstacles
with
that
RING
generally
the
against those
THE
OF
that
brought
are
of
portion
the
upon of
success
SOLOMON.
the
mounts
particular the
by
on
hand
in
dencies ten-
which
it
is found. On
the
Mount
of
it
Jupiter
denotes
egotism,
pride,
and
the
dominative
spirit. On a
the
morbid
Mount
of Saturn
it foretells
misfortune,
melancholy
a
nature,
and
tendency.
On
the
Mount
of
Sun
the
it
tells
of
vanity,
folly, and
a
desire
for
celebrity. On
the
Mount
of
it denotes
Mercury
unstable
an
and
rather
unprincipled
"
person.
On
the
On
the
Mount
of
Mount
Luna
it
Venus,
of
foretells
in
caprice
(Plate XV.)
triangle
distinct, and
not
When
distinct
usual
in
the
so
the
for
the
by
in
the
organization
On
work,
in
success
formed
Mount
delving
is the
shape
chance
of
Saturn
into
the
quietude. dis-
crossing of
people,
is
and of
the
found
clear
and
lines.
Jupiter,
in
often
it
promises
handling
of
more
men,
and
than even
affairs.
every-day
of
sigu,
Mount of
management
and
passion.
curious
a
the
on
discontent,
triangle.
the
The
restlessness,
it
gives
occult,
for
forth. 131
a
talent the
inclination
and
study
of
human
for
mystical
magnetism,
and
Cheiro's
132
On a
the
calm
of
Mount
toward
demeanor
Sun
the
of the Hand.
Language it denotes and
success
of
practical application
a
Celebrity
fame.
will
and
art
such
spoil
never
people. On
the
success
On
ideas
the
of Mars
Mount
Mount
of the
The
it
and
of
in
science
it tells of
warfare, great
calmness
in any
scientific
a
method
in
following
the
out
calmness
(r,Plate
mark
the
heart, or
main
line.
formed
lie
as
be
and
distinct
a
qualitiesare the
excellent
an
position
either
fate
and
without
mark
and
mark
at
of
of
sign
success
on.
of the
center
its upper
or
line from
a
the
with
connection
rangle quad-
lower
tremities. ex-
head
to
other
any
superstition. in
widely apart this
the
domain
found line
the
by
its
for
usually
mysticism, occultism,
three
of
power
mystique."
ceoix
it may
but
be
it may
It denotes
has
XIX.),
It may
love, the
it is found.
"la
strange
is
spear-head (Plate XV.)
or
in
calculation
and
self.
over
which
on
These
promises
danger.
Venus,
control
tripod
This
qualities,and
money.
gives
in
of Luna
Mount
mount
any
or
its restless
checks
imagination.
the
restraint
business
of mind
presence
it
Mercury
to
the
On
of
in relation
crisis,and On
Mount
often
themselves, although
takes
the
on
hand
is
founded, con-
therefore
very
important. When
high for
mysticism where
by
one's
it relates
curiosity
heart more
the
than so
line takes
with
when a
own
self.
know
to
deeper interest When
to
that "
sharp
curve
but life,
not
how
Croix
it is
toward
Such
the
that
hand
the
on
up
people their
of
head,
marked
it over
downward.
is
desire
to
their
want
for its
the
follow
will
a
it farther
turn
with
superstitious nature,
It must
of be
than
out
in
than more
the
by
sake.
own
center
belief
told,actuated
closely connected
more
gives
give the
will
fortunes
ambitions
own
"
it
the
study involves Mystique
Jupiter,
the
and
the
this
head-line, when
remembered
that
line
the
of
even
that
length
The
of
the
line
over
The
long Croix
of
it
cross
"
one
it
will
has
be
is
touches
the
entire
fate-line,
the
than
Ring
occult, the
but
mere
of
in
love
of
short
very
the
on
formed
line
of
133
with
the
the
long
particularly
it, the
by
line
than
and
occultism,
Solomon.
of
so
one.
if
the
head.
love
of
the
mystic
career.
Solomon
this
is
or
Ring
superstitious
formation
independent
an
The
this.
more
for
greatest
THE
The
with
times
the
The
Mystique,^''
Croix
do
to
thousand
be
"
''''La
much
a
will
the
influence
Triangle,
head
Mystique When
will
The
Grille,
RING
(Plate case
the
it
shows
mystic
OF
XII.) more
denoted
SOLOMON.
is
a
the
by
that
sign power "
La
also
of
Croix
denotes
the
master,
Mystique."
the
the
love
adept,
of
CHAPTER
HANDS
When
COVERED
the
spreading
sensitive, but and
thoughts This of
things
its
surface,
is in
will
that
troubles
and
more
successful
for
SMOOTH
and
even
but
when
in
of
as
" "
do
hard when
than
would
In
be
:
the
too
lines
the
the
much
of
if
latter
case
will
not
an
skin,
the
longer work, yet
the
even
subject
than
but
the I
am
where
palm will
of
retain with
person
speaking there
the
is
of manual
a
ever
whatever
and
palm
others.
to
nature,
but
of
little
by
all
imagine
if the
the
sorts
hand
that
one
net
a
nervous
worried
people
a
take
they
;
This
is
of
much
so
sufficient
in
be far
is
temperament
rarely
again
sign
greater
it is not
calm
people
worry
a
lose
temper,
modified control
and
matter
of
interest
to
the
by
ness calm-
control
lose
temper
SKIN.
is covered
buoyancy
naturally and
skin.
coarse
cases
intensely
like
exertion.
hand
the
to
why.
THE
When
belong
firm, it is
subject
lines
self.
reason
When
fine
HANDS.
seldom
know
soft.
or
few
They
they
soft.
indifference
that
with
disposition.
they
being
palm
hands
smooth
Very
but
;
PALM.
and
such
"
excitable
for
than
people
is
importance
troubles
energetic,
of
nature
soft
be
THE
disturbed
no
palm and
an
other
of
be
ailments
firm, it denotes
hard
the
that
OF
multitude
a
continually
if the
so
of
way
be
COLOR
with
tells
would
that
particularly the
it
THE
"
is covered
liand
one
LINES
WITH
entire
over
XXIII.
where work
this 134
with
temperament
This
is of
little
labor
can
still
or
be
course
a
very of
fine
youth
light much
affected
much
manual
work
observed
by
by
is done the
ridges
;
CHAPTER
THE
the
When,
is
as
absent, its place triangle, This
is
will
be
not
and
When should
the
be
breadth
of
If, denotes
views,
the
the
When the
the
second
subject
strong
resolution.
within
itself
will
the
seeds
a
of
This
upper
angle of
angle
should
thought
be and
worldly
his
and
base
of
the
XXII.), the
although base
of
the
angle tri-
angle, which
lower
head, life, and In
such
such
interests
of
three
small,
the
a
health, it it denotes
case
will
person
whole,
the
not
a
lines, it
would
man
clined in-
be
unit
uncertain
wavy,
Such
cowardice.
selves, by them-
considered
the
of
spirit;
always
principles. triangle it has
the
ideas the
from
very
but
its base
for
the
line
individuality
great
qualities it exhibits,
of
and
contains
success.
angle.
upper
XXII.)
is formed
by
clear, well
pointed,
and
and
delicacy
toward
mind,
by
altogether
Plate
{a-a,
the
be
Mars.
of
narrow
sign,
(", Plate
by
of
the
The
the
and
have
Such
of
Plain
formed
formation then
the
success,
miist
lines
the
by
further
against
even
base
when
as
middle,
generosity
spirit, meanness,
majority in
the
entire
and
triangle
great
upper,
the
it is
contrary,
liberal
is
form
and
power
health
to
the
is formed
Mars,
health.
formed
to
of
of
line
forms
sun
and
is well
liberality
of
of
sign
later.
inclose
line
the
imaginary
line
of
Triangle
case,
an
w^ith
himself
timidity
with
sun,
and
by
the
dealt
triangle
sacrifice
on
contains
be
broad
to
go
will
points
the
of the
positions
it
(Plate XXII.).
the
of
the
hepatica
greatest
line
the
QUADEANGLE.
or
broad-minded
so
by
shape
the
THE
triangle,
filled
found)
far
although three
the
be
often
by
is formed The
great
AND
frequently
very must
(as is
or
latter
subject
the
life,head, and
of
lines
TRIANGLE
GKEAT
called
is
What
XXIV.
136
even.
the
Such others.
lines will
of
head indicate
and
life.
ment refine-
The
When
Great
obtuse, it denotes
very
feeling and
delicacy and
a
the
Triangle and
appreciation of
small
very
matter-of-fact
dull
a
137
Quadrangle. intellect
art
artistic
of
or
with
little
things
people.
or
When who
extremely wide
will
continually offend
application
in
obtuse, it gives
and
middle
and
impatience
person
of
want
and
well
ANGLE.
MIDDLE
and
by the line of head
angle is formed
If clear
XXIL).
a
study. THE
The
denotes
It also
people.
blunt, hasty temper,
a
defined, it
that of health
(c,Plate
quickness of intellect, vivacity,
denotes
good health.
and
When
acute, it denotes
very
a
painfully
bad
and
temperament
nervous
health. When of
obtuse, dullness
very
of
a
matter-of-fact
method
working. THE
The
lower
Plate angle (rZ,
tioa,denotes strong
XXII.),
ANGLE.
when
littleness
and
feebleness,
LOWER
of
and
acute
very
spirit; when
made
by the hepa-
obtuse, it denotes
a
nature.
When a
intelligence and
made
by the
view
narrow
of
line of
things
and
sun
but acute, it gives individualitj^,
very
obtuse, it gives
; when
broader
a
and
more
generous
mind. QUADRANGLE.
THE
The the
quadrangle,
lines of head It
should Its
center.
whether
as
interior
from
the
of
evenness
be
from
or
mind,
wide
shape,
should
head
space
between
(Plate XXIL).
in
even
implies, is that quadrangular
name
heart
and
be
its
smooth the
and
ends, but not
When
heart. of
power
both
at
crossed
not
with
marked
intellect,and
loyalty
lines,
many
in this way, in
the
at
narrow
it indicates
friendship
or
affection. This
When and
represents
space
bigotry,
within
excessively narrow, but
more
in
regard
itself the it shows to
man's narrow
religion
and
disposition
toward
ideas, smallness morals, whereas
of the
his fellows.
thought, triangle
Cheird's
138
conservatism
denotes
is
this
sign,
remarkable
a
the
and
work
regards
as
of the
Language
hand
With
occupation.
the
of
Hand.
bigot
religious this
having
always
people tremely ex-
space
narrow.
On
other
the
views
subject's
of
a
should the
Sun
a
than
Saturn,
The
opposite
the
what
world
When other
and
that
broadness
of
the
in
the
nature,
and
one
When calm
the
is
his
the
do
to
in
is
smooth
little
lines
in
wide
abnormally
imprudent
and
of
every
the
Mount or
other
the
of
tation. repu-
is
in
people
"
reputation.
one's
and
ends
two
It
of
up
from
change
the
ance appear-
narrow.
opinion
Jupiter
or
the
position,
is
is, the
good.
it has
name,
keep
it
own
under
space
narrow
carelessness
brain,
quadrangle
will
become
to
about
to
his
Again,
wider
Saturn
subject
mind
as
must
one
under
the
quadrangle
order
of
what
that
center
the
When
for
much
when
shown
broad
injustice.
When
anxiety
wide
it denotes
When want
and
excessively
end,
views
intense
thinks,
and
wide.
too
too
the
is careless is
this
be in
prejudice
person
of of
sign
a
will
balanced.
the
be
not
much
so
denotes
fairly equally
case
morals
narrows
it
must
space
and
religion
space
waist,
be
such
of
this
When
the
hand,
at
narrower
the his
of
generosity
prejudiced.
its
entire and
thought
length, ideas,
it
denotes
tional unconven-
an
way.
and
free
little
from
it
lines,
denotes
a
temperament. When
full
YQvy
of
and
the
crosses,
nature
is
restless
and
irritable. A
if it be
and
star
in
any
under
favorable
some
Under
Jupiter
it
Under
Saturn,
success
Under
the
between
Mount
the
of
portion
Sun
and
is
quadrangle
an
excellent
sign, particularly
mount.
promises
of
the
in
the
pride
and
worldly Sun,
Mercury,
power.
matters.
success
success
in
fame
in
science
and
position and
through
research.
art
;
CHAPTER
TEAVEL,
the
There
are
two
heavy
lines
on
hair-lines
that
leave
indication
is
similar
branch
Luna,
it
native
land
which
found
but
Luna, and
worldly
in
but
journey, When result On
the
in
the
When
line
Plate
ends
(/, Plate
Mount
of
line
of will
of
the
of
line
then fate
or
lines
does
improve,
not
the
the
to
if
the
of
his
from
told
Luna,
on
It
the
by
is
bracelet
first
times some-
(Plate
travel-lines
shows
a
are
on
considerable and
prosperous
advantage
any
great
any
one
Mount
lines
show
not
This
:
change
to
fate
these
of
subject.
similar
are
hand
journeys
than
rascette,
the
point,
subject
the
travels
These
base
little
XXII.).
the
great
that
th^
Luna.
the
the
to
the
in
extent,
change.
subject
loss
from
same
the
travel-line
the
the
the
(e-e,
the
of
Luna
with
ends
journey-line
a
disappointment When
will
by
such
extend
in
is from
from
{j, Plate
dividing
important or
other,
it
some
follows
more
important. at
make
changes
Mount
point,
matters
When
minor
life
proceeding will
far
with
One
voyages. the
;
on
of
line
other
are
however,
same
the
Luna
travel
but
therefore
lines
the
more
When, the
at
the
change
fortunate.
life
of
Mount
subject
life
of
into
much
beneficial
gained
the
long
rise
of
the
It
to
that
and
XXIL),
that
more
the
of
Venus,
line
the
of
that
another.
to
relate
line
to
foretells
in
change
the
around
goes
face
and
telling travels
of
ways
ACCIDENTS.
AND
VOYAGES,
distinct the
XXV.
a
small
cross,
the
journey
will
end
XXII.). in
ends will with
be
a
square,
it
denotes
from
danger
the
protected.
an
island,
no
matter
how
small,
the
journey
XXII.). the
ascendant
the
hand
lines
from
the
rascette
are
the
most
beneficial. When
the
line
crosses
and 139
enters
the
Mount
of
Jupiter,
'great
Cheiro's
140
position and
will
power
be
of the Hand.
Language
by it,and
gained
the
will
journey
also
be
tremely ex-
lODg. the
When
entire
the
govern
When riches
it
and
will arise When
of
When
the the
but
for
is most
favorable, and
sudden
and
some
Luna
on
will
journeys
of
Saturn,
be
the
line
wrist, the
fatality will
some
promises
wealth
unexpected
and
more
that
on
of the
important
mount,
and
reach
than
those
mount
though they
not
may
XXII.).
and
ascend
with
travels
it,they denote
lines
droop
Ibe unfortunate
short, it
will
Plate {Jc,
When
XXII.).
successful.
be
another, such
crosses
downward
curve
or
journey will
a
be
repeated,
reason.
such
on
square
how
lines
important
longer
horizontal
will
journey
of these
face
subject.
of these
matter
no
the
also
of fate
the
of any
cross
{g-g, Plate
country
enter
end
one
Any
a
show
line will
but
danger,
i^rotectionfrom
dent acci-
misfortune.
or
If
Sun, it
Mercury,
short, heavy lines
upward,
When
of
lines
materially benefit
rise
they
the
they
When toward
of the
Mount
horizontal
change
a
the
fate, the
by
will
of
it.
the
mdicated
that
Mount
to the
runs
from
relate to
Mount
journey.
it reaches
line
the
to
runs
celebrity.
When
the
travel-line
the
travel-line
break, it foretells
danger
some
journey {h-h, Plate
into
runs
the
line of
the
to
head,
head or
and
causes
a
spot, island,or such
malady arising from
some
a
XXII.). ACCIDENTS.
I have travel
and
life and In
alluded
to
in relation
immediate
When,
first place, the of
danger from
an
life-line, serious, if When
than
such
a
at
island not
disasters
other
any
accident
death,
follows
as
by
a
small
more
marked
of on
the
line
of
the
line
of
to the
line
of
life denotes
a
more
:
Saturn,
on
are
treatment
point.
marked
fatal,danger
line ends
in my
considerably
travel,but
to
line of head the
accidents
a
line
is indicated cross,
falls
downward
{i-i,Plate
either
on
the
and
enters
the
XXII.). line
of life
or
with-
Travel,
out
it, it
tells
that
the
have
will
subject
141
Accidents.
and
Voyages,
narrow
some
from
escape
serious
accident.
When
Saturn,
the
the
not
lower
so
that
the
or
line
from
to
the
life-line
the
of
base
than
of
danger either
island
Mount
other
from
means
the
possessing
line
a
animals
from
more
Saturn
from
as
break
the
the
on
the
foresee
to
the
of
will
danger
the
marked
shock
serious
result
the
at
of
causes.
kind,
some
Saturn
on
or
down.
To
cut
line
down,
lower
occurs
will
accident
straight
Any but
mark
same
head
exactly
be
direct
head-line line
dangers brain,
of
the
life that
but
to
:
it
as
and results
signify
not
it
but
such unless
unless
a
the
mark
the
as
much
is
injured
a
line when
as
has
person
indicates line
difference,
accident
the
death
that
were,
this
with
apply,
itself,
does
denotes,
serious
rules
same
head
the
danger
approach, no
the
time
fright or
broken.
to
and
XXVI.
CHAPTER
TIME
In
and
accurate,
therefore
I
all
in In
the
undergoes of
the
find
we
in
"
the
that
the
unique
in
all ages
history
of
wonders
seven
of
seven
sections,
seven
is
the
entire
The
to
me
theory
that
functional the one,
age
healthy through
and
the
the
also
advance
of
is
child
strong
change
sevens
the
likely
healthy at
intermediate
and
twenty-one, years.
to
it is
largely seven
to
alike
example, delicate
be
strong
at
matter
no
This
is 142
a
an
on
the how
child
of
interesting
further
that
of
the
the
observation the
student)
relation
age
he
or
point
in
to
on
of
will
seven
delicate
the
Bible
the
delicate
very
passing age
is
the
their
in
seven
give
own
of
the
containing in
to
My
part
the
each
subject
years.
Again,
minerals,
Again,
consideration
the
of
seven
body
this
it takes
humanity,
gods
the
stages
important of
seven
the
system
forth.
so
superfluous
on
somewhat
For
by
seven
most
a
world.
the
but
for
taught
before
races
of
parts of
every
;
colors, the
seven
three
are
body.
also
the
most
(simply
alternate
seven
a
bears a
the
number;
sideration. con-
entire
are
and
"
played
altars
divisions
seven
that
has
the
forms
brain
seven
the
her
or
standpoint
there
seven
instance, the
week,
that
that
;
human
seven
senses,
undergoing
of
the
of
seven
point
the
the
scientific find
takes
seven
for
as,
;
his
being
as
I have
exceptionally
for it
and
years
the
consider
advance
We
brain
number
important
changes
whereas
of
world,
and
most
system
leads
the
the
character
which
life.
seven
the
world
I
calculation.
every
I
dates
student
medical
a
that
;
the
days
seven
supposition
details.
the
of
the
planets,
change
existence
prenatal
of
the
to
with
from
point
complete
seven,
and
which
one
and
dealings
we
important a
itself
upon
place,
It is
of
find
time
regards
as
it
system
SEVEN.
OF
recommend
mysterious
first
most
a
seven
her
system
a
elsewhere.
It is the nature
use
mentioned
found
never
I
work
own
my
SYSTEM
THE
"
she
the
ing pass-
twenty-
again
be
may
be
predictions
t^
Time
Tlie
"
relating
health,
to
and
reliable. dates
with
those
usually
consulted
Plate
XXIII.
it will
great
divisions,
student the
more
will
proceeding
there of
the
palm
the
student
will
that
student
the
in
to
the
give
such
a
thing
student
lines
date
a
be
into
as
will
be
found
and
will
the
fate
the
I
of
simplest
the
and
the
stands
given
to
by If
psychic. his
divide
too
before
dates
increase
or
mentally
the
on
hand It
of
if
impress
the
that
three
subdivisions
cannot
type
or
In
fate. into an-d
calculation.
reduce
To
palm.
fill in
between and
hand
and
of
forty-nine,
class
difference
he
mind, the
calculation be
of
found
to
when
happen.
and
an
dates, that
It
events.
discouraged, divisions
smallest
life
and
most
in
scale
lines
the
cordance ac-
into
plan
accurate
pursue.
the
will
in of
it will
to
as
the
make
length
can
together,
accuracy
this
the
the
greatest
of line
which
notice
tremely ex-
giving
lines, however,
the
easily
more
but
sections
Into
those
are
divided
however,
spatulate
or
illustrated
When, used
must to
square
will
point,
the
dates,
have
thirty-five,
he
The
be
bear
with
as
mind
student
must
the
sections
in
attempting
or
that
reason
the
I
interesting
divided
important
most
to
that
twenty-one,
itself.
that
is,
reference
only
not be
can
The
noticed
this
hand
strongly
in be
found
have
143
Seven.
of
hand
the
on
accuracy.
namely,
keep
human
line
less
or
I
which
one
Every
System
is
illness
therefore,
they
or
not
an
gives if
at
of
and
life
corroborate
therefore
Practice
subdivisions.
line
the
event
perfection
first
he
finds
after
place, in
all
line
a
or
and
little
in
are
give
practice, such
when
things
difficulty
fate
of
another
one
difficult, took
the
and
not
the
dividing
the
;
let
PAET
ILLUSTEATIVE
III."
TYPES.
CHAPTER
A
I
WILL
deal
now
of
congregation It
character.
is
character It
takes
suicide
in
town
every
for
interest
If "
like
I would
in
one
self
of
body
sea-shore,
or,
the
treatment
to
People
corpse who
is
life, he
only
to
in
up
this
the
in
the
corpse
clay
it is the "
consider
this
In
of
but
matter
of are
144
night
the
apt
of
I
living say
the
the
"
that that
him be
have
have in
of
sand It
dead
feel
such
too
the
seen
the
or
seen
sea.
makes
that
semi-
made
I
?
not
The
age
into
against
to
able consider-
cannot
next,
go
itself.
borders
buried
and
cliffs
suicide
returns."
the
I
Why
has
of
tion disposi-
before
has
the
to
countries
some
the
morgue.
suicide
to
voice
my
the
enlightened
the
over
brutality
which
it
the
act
of
gards re-
variety
a
But
subject
traveler
so-called
I raise
this.
death,
no
world,
dead
bearing
the
study
an
grave.
the
that
of
such
this
type
as
direction.
that
or
it take
establishment
an
bourn
by
this
does
of to
should
whose that
The
as
temple
still,thrown
worse
lightly
reside,
may
so
example
remarks
strange
attend
dug
few
a
:
saint.
a
in
the
has
sign
dangerous
or
the
individual
each
peculiarity
or
tendency
watch
a
striking
from
not
to
suicide
the
the
the
I
Even
refuse
clergymen
or
idea
condemned.
highly
criminal
studies
outcast,
particular
evil
in
student
form
to
go mark
An
the
help
to
distinct
one
nature.
make
very
country,
an
that
to
is that
semi-human
barbarous,
a
which
sense
any
that
the
make
to
me
undiscovered
her
a
is
formations
one
any
wheels
make
to
toward
In
of
variety
a
types
and
shows
merely
characteristics
farther
blight
or
SUICIDE.
illustrative
if ever,
seldom,
ON
WORDS
few
a
lines, signs,
ruin
to
power
with
FEW
I.
me
is
not
ing, noth-
speak.
things
do
A
exist
not
four
1893,
of
case
nowadays cases
for
analyze life if I shall
know
minded
who
who
It is preposterous what
that
is wrong,
knowing
There
is
a
a
a
of
of sorrow,
or
of
arrows
and eyes,
with
suicide
absurd,
commits it has
as
logic have
and
has death
was
is
given
often
been
used to
noblest
possible
courage,
mighty
angel
the
to
of
to the seems
e
must
every
conclusion
that
whom,
desire,
the
slings
and
all
reference idea
I have
the
that side in his
of the
life
suicides the
"
to
people,
because
the
face
marvelous
the
case
mitted Com-
"
show
an
of it
reason
question before
particular
known
all their
most
that
their
?
all
to
on
sure mea-
with
see
understanding
The
not.
strongest fortitude,and
mystery
in
than
of
judge
we
necessarily be insane, is
to balance
in life.
used
as
insanity or
demonstrated
been
"
the
ble rum-
dazzling
very-day phrase of the jury
mind,"
utterly
that
way
to
to
conduct.
like the
sensitive
their
with
be
pressure
not
child
our
a
or
been, in
may
more
do
we
those
right
of the
sufferer
then, should
Why,
is
have
such
in
keenly
I have
misfortune.
and
one
mind, under
more
the
to
prove
he
thing the
the
way
to
I
it is weak-
contrary,
decides
senses
match
a
reserve?
that
the birth
am
attempting
without
which
sounds
of
if I
of
good
always
right
vision
understand
unsound
suicide
come
the
of
man clergy-
get any
mentality from
and
are,
seems
room
become
and
to
lines of what
people, simply because
ears,
the
misery
narrow
affects the
same
exception
while
evidence
individual
that
their
also take
I must
whether
such
in
the
of
life,from
mental
fortune."
outrageous
On
class
we
What
striking
may
1894,
in
found
not
through
any
governing
same
the
anxiety,
condemn
hear
In
lightning. of
the
York
be the
I have
life
that
do
which
in the
mail-cart, while
flash
and
pencil
a
would
different of
to the
disease
in
point of suicide,even
suicide.
a
individual.
well-known
scratching of of
laws
England
opinions freely and
set up
we
another, according
to
wrong
as
the
of the
development
to
should
we
complete ignorance of the
his
skirts
the
to
on
stay in
impossible
for what
generally commit
hang
to
New
this
saying that
they belong
in
even
on
"
state
for
my
grave.
stress
not
criticized
that
found
prefer
did
145
During
almost
was
remarks
my
one
be
people
merely
the
over
lay considerable
must
severely criticized to
actress, it
words
few
a
notice, and
my
Suicide.
on
not?
they
do
to
came
well-known
a
to say
I
but
"
Words
Few
the
search the
dividual infor
est great-
greatest will in facing
long, they have
been
taught
Cheird's Language
146
to avoid
I have
dread.
and
known
not few
suffered,but
because
that such
told
be it rest
a
could
person
wishes
or
the
the
and
barbarianism mothers
many
How
?
thing Alas
for
! thou
know
be, we
which
us
burial.
could
not
part
to
the is
the
?
Almighty
poor
the
cried and have
sobbed
raised defiant
man
the
of its
How
naut Jugger-
the darkness
of the
that
heaven
to
nipotent Om-
relic of
spirit?
wheels
beneath eyes
the
the
of the
this
has
of
the
man
among
mouthpiece
suicides
beneath
Is it man,
tomb.
What
been
of peace,
to dictate to
everlasting torment broken
ing burden-
I have
kingdom
the
they
agony
yet
I
disease
suffer,and
afford ; and
presumption
many
of the
lot in that
or
incurable
an
because
children
of death, of great Spirit of life,
thou
but
Christian
such
?
thy
not
thy design. give
be
to
brothers
many
could
How
?
sisters have
many
receive
Not
?
right to elect himself
this fetishism
has
How
night ?
has thus
Unknown
condemned
martyrdom
lies beyond the silence of
has the
of the earth
mortals
scarce
why
no
of that which
judgments
of silent
sufferingfrom
they
have
deeds
noble
causing their
which
ghoul, 01 devil,I ask, who
or
a
they
and
"
were
which it life,
be
or
sooner
expenditure
with
would
of persons
cases
months
ending life a them
few
a
the most
afterward
performed by those who have
known
of the Hand.
As what
hast we
name,
endowed are
we
thy being, thy creation,or and
man
nothing,forgive us need
; and
the life, the death, the feufficient,
as
we
be
the in
the
things ;
as
we
nothing, be
eternal of the soul.
all that
ultimate
man
shaped all
is,of
all that
will
purpose
carrying out of ask for
thou
to
us
nothing, the
all-
11.
CHAPTER
THE
PECULIARITIES
hand
The
Mount
of
is
of
nature
be
morbid
the
sensitive
and
thousandfold,
The
such
same
Mount
who
will
the
disappointment which
he
is
characteristic
sufficient is time
to to
The
think,
have
a
weighing
this
of
the
melancholy every
side
to
the and
gloomy the
nature
that
life
the
fly
under
any
trouble
by
last
that
to
dividual in-
an
;
or
resource
long.
so
(Plate
XXV.)
a
person
excitable
on
shock
trouble
is
all-
there
before
and
or
that
impulse
or
disposition,
pointed
a
sudden
the
only through a
self-
well-developed
a
morbid
conclusion
head
such
of
a
done.
head
of
line a
in
turn
question
is
the
very
of
for 147
life
;
and
he
the
keenly
and
of
Such ;
if he
he
will be
mitting com-
Such
line
Saturn.
will, however,
death,
subject's
sloping.
with
unusually
mind
the
abnormally
not
fully developed life
of
case
closely connected
of
disappointments
of
but
To
line
have
satisfaction
with
sensitive,
excitability is shown
Jupiter,
and
of
result,
is
the
will
Mount
feel
of when
however,
depressed
deed
is intensified
resignedly
line
so
XXV.
connection
for
is
nature
scandal
and
impulse
the
the
but
or
very
tive sensi-
naturally
not
quietly
nature.
the
impart
opposite
person,
the
would
slightest provocation
of
is also
excessively
the
"
thought
same
the
developed
a
head
of
peculiar
Plate
the
to
line
so
drooping the
of
suicide
will
and
cherished
denotes
to
in
come
the
and
head,
suicide,
by
found
living
him
excessively
hand
conic
worth
not
gives
thoroughly
determinedly
causes
has
The
give
for
exemplified
as
being
is
self
TENDENCY.
individual
trouble, grief,
any
injure
or
type,
a
will
circumstances
that
The
the
case
of
increases
so
inclination
indications
Saturn
of
kill
to
a
SUICIDAL
line
its base.
such
the
show
and to
In
subject.
A
sloping
life,and
of
line
SHOW
a
toward
imaginative
so
martyrdom
the
even
WHICH
long, with
generally
with
or
HANDS
particularly
Luna,
connected
much
OF
a
life, a a
ject subwell
as
logical in
arrives
at
the
Cheiro^s
148
that
conclusion
he
in
will,
the
proceed
We
or
are
notice..
wakeful
our
he
all
the
pale,
side,
are
gone
in
face
worn
the
this
at
up
to
wasted
forever.
our
that
cheeks
the
of
Hand.
battle
the
and
end
an
arrives
wrapped
so
nights, and
put
and
up
reasonable
to
before
suffer
is
game
most
a
Language
sensible
over
it
conclusion
What
is
interests
own
has
suffered
of
hunger,
scarcely and
so
he
as
is
according
manner,
misfortunes.
all
far
as
affairs
patiently, that
appear
concerned, his
to
such
a
possible that
the
for
will
person to
estimate.
"hardly
we
hollow
a
point, stand-
moment
eyes
see
of
by
Murder.
Propensitiesfor
150
of
points
murder
it divides
made
murderer
The
1st.
into
3d. others
the
gratify the
to
that
nature
will
three
touched
though keenly
The
friendlv
on
natured
; the
that
nature
feeds
on
terms
with
in
of
drops
the
honey
life exhibited
for
feels in that takes
consciousness,
is very
broken
by
such
and
will
sufferings of
the
victim
; the
person
the
"
who
by the sufferer,and
danger
pleasure
more
of
sense
a
who,
delight, and^
in such
than
work
The
will be
passion. of head
heav}^
thick
"the
is found of Venus
and
thumb.
the
and
called
the hand
line
hand
an
or
becomes
woman
deed
is
done, such
a
the blind is
one
a
derer mur-
thoroughly
be
may
provocation excites
some
the
man
individual
goodof the
fury
generally crushed
remorse.
cases
brute
it.
Such
when
The
ordinary.
kind-hearted, but
nature, and
In
not
danger,
circumstances.
and
animal
short
of moral
death
out
longings
to the
first class
by
the
the
in
gain it brings.
in the
to
deal
the
by
alive
lack
utter
and
it were,
will,as be
with
:
tendency.
covetous
live
exhibited
kill,as
gain
disposition which
even
classes
""
that
cannot
different
distinct
very
to
of
7
one
picture from
a
revenge.
by the greed
so
utterly heartless
The
:
made
in order
nothing
at
stop
murderer
The
2d.
of
instinct
by the
so
creation,through passion, fury, or
brute
face
view.)
regards the hand,
As
finds in the
expressions one
different
many
It
The
thumb
in the second
is also
thumb"
than
more
ungovernable
be
phalange,
the
(Plate VIII.),very
abnormally
in such
large,sexual
the
a
the
on
first
approach
near
red, and
and
If in such
types.
be
will
greatest failing will
hand
be
the
that
; it will be
will
phalange
short,broad,
passion
per tem-
characteristic,however,
low
set very and
or
red, the nails short
remarkable
most
will
exception
unusually developed,
sign
short, thick, and
coarse.
without
bad
no
is,in fact,the elementary hand,
is
The
clubbed
almost
shows
and cases
be what
this
square:
the Mount
destroyer of
is
; when
ungovernable
temper. In
the
second
class
striking peculiarity will but
with
abnormal
a
decided
of
none
be
growth
the
these
line
upward
position,rising high
toward
of
points will head,
which
(Plate XXIV.)
Mercury,
or
abnormal
be
will
be
; it will
far
before
; the
most
heavily marked, be
found
it reaches
in
an
that
CJieird's
leaves
point it completely
it enters
stronger,
(See
subject. page
96.)
long,
very
and
propensities, third
The
it may
though
It is the
of be
will
The
line be
however,
depressed
either will
committed Such
reduced
every
detail.
thing
would
employ, causes."
the
are
but
They be
for
so
or
of
of
is the
the
IX., but
thick,
covetous
gives
pursuit
regard
hand the
gain. interesting,
most
itself.
will
curved
both
only by
side
of
this
be
a
the
thumb
ability
exists
be
ever,
hard
and
found
times
at
amination ex-
long, plan
to
be
nature
thin,
very
rarely, if
formation
a
be
the
it will
;
will
inward;
giving
such
It
will
There
crime.
to
treacherous
execution
usual
hand, for
of
will in
skilfully that
instincts.
The
the
on
of
the
crime
;
execution
the
"
in
artists
kill
poison verdict
their
is the is
will
but
Mount
when
very
long
of
Venus
may
such
a
and be
subject
crime
will
desires. Murder
crime. which
victim
by
chief
usually
will,
be
high, the
animal
of
It
position.
depressed,
satisfying the
if ever,
eyes
When
high.
sake
art, in
rarely, their
hand,
skilled
the
fine
the
very
of
its proper
of
out
across
the
sake
the
a
or
be
not
may
treacherous
hands
vulgar
thoughts
abnormally
nature,
slightly
although
simply
to
the
it were,
class.
the the
the
developed,
than
for
more
is
persons
on
crime
commit
well
may
higher
set
in
it,as
II., Chapter
formation
features, however,
generally
necessary
head
Part
not
entire
in
that
leading
outward,
thin, denoting
very
with
first-mentioned of
kind
head,
thumb
human
nature
characteristics
phalanges of
the
of
subtlest
The
inclining
or
hands
be
the
of
connection
fingers
both
strength
bent
all
of
The
of
possession or
come be-
propensities
terrible.
the
in
line
conscience
student
most
of
the
long,
with
the
hand
the
to
the
discovered.
hand, and
be
abnormal
nothing
will
class,
of
want
utter
an
the
the
as
;
impulses
generous
inward.
151
hand
right
hard, the
usually
Hand,
heart, takes
on
contracted
stiff,and
the
on
of
remarks
is
hand
line
all the
previous
The
place
the
masks
completely
thus
and
its
of the
Language
they
such
will
study
violence "
Death
such
that
instrument "
with
from
a
they
natural
IV.
CHAPTER
It
lias
is when "
this
lunatic
"
1st.
the
upon
here
the
are
and
Melancholy
2d.
The
development
3d.
The
natural
given
following
the
a
sharp
first
the to
the
Mount
interest
As
there
the
that
eccentricity are
The
hand.
chief
title
the
forms
many
It
point.
of
ness, mad-
types
that
:
madness,
hallucinations,
etc.
crank.
the
AND
line
down
on
abnormally
this, the
of
by
particular
some
madman.
case
low
curve
on
point
individual.
MELANCHOLY
In
mad
half-way
religious of
INSANITY.
are
men
indications
many
consider
will
all
the
passes
is bestowed there
that
said
been
madness
are
so
we
often
OF
PHASES
VAEIOUS
of
head,
the
Mount
imaginative
of
Venus
in
all
human
rule,
such
is
is
on
a
of
rather
broad
Luna,
very
of
temperament
things
;
and
descends
hand, often
the
to
the
the
addition the
of
Mount
noting de-
base,
decreasing
lastly,
with
In
subject.
thus
developed,
well
not
natural
or
MADNESS.
EELIGIOUS
ject's sub-
Saturn
dominates. As
early
a
in
he
that would
life
with
strong which
possesses,
probably
itself, and
work
increases.
thus
starts.
Its
periods
balance
are
few
the
religious
off
and
then
far
the
hand
of
the
hallucinations
from
its
excess
At
grow
between.
first
and
relieve
this
is
longer
and This
maniac. 152
the
into
only
longer,
until
the
the
itself, but
shown
is
He
morbid
if
commences
imagination
extraordinary
directed
if
imagination,
maniac.
religious
channel,
proper
opposed,
or
last
its
on
fits
and
in
occasionally at
feeds
of
moments
melancholy
type
of
Cheird's
THE
This distinct
types
In
of
type
the
and
nature, invention be
crush
to
attempt
which
he
successful, and
under.
The
which
whose
fact of his
he
out
will
he
might
would
of
work
to
to
thought, the
But
will
the
he
slavery
excitement
der un-
himself
turns
is
of his
weakening
he
end,
his
to
he dreams the
of
the
to
extraordinary
from
secret, the
he
mankind.
some
in
labors, is the laboratory where, in
give
even
which
him
emancipate
ideas.
entirely foreign
one
;
power
in life where
benefit
thought
in secret
own
of its inventive
position
some
by intensity
and
very
daring originality,
dissipates its
It
occupation
some
having
two
extremely spatulate
an
multitude
which
all his current
success
confinement
by
nerve-power
by
on
denotes
well, and
be
to work
attempts
very
to the
discovery
man
with
conjunction
merely
only get into
could
or
a
in
possible direction.
instantly turn
you
it
ideas, all would
such
CEANK.
philosophic.
things, owing
subject
153
sloping line of head
very
great invention
some
the
THE
found
commencement
many
off those
might work world
too
if the
I say,
and
itself in every
show
by attempting Again
the
OF
generally
spatulate
At
formation. which
is
type it is the
first
will
DEVELOPMENT
madness
the
"
of the Hand.
Language
out
mad.
"
The
next
of
curve
the
type line
the
is
of
head
philosophic formation.
In
leans
toward
the
from
first to
last ; he
theory and
he
the
mark
of
the
he
weak
"
all
he
of
gets there
"
For
enjoyment
point is the
others
the
of
life,even
fanatic
public
to
the
lost.
It
feverish
object
he
food,
in
He
well,
means
point, doctrine, or
circumstances, subject
that
never
knows that
anxiety
the
accentuated
an
eventually the madman,
whatever
this
sudden
a
non-success,
the
pass
half-way
lunatic.
is not
works
on
make
who
person
by
of mankind.
unfavorable
but
shown
with
and
crank, and
religion,his is
only
it is his
a
again
Luna,
in the salvation
become be
are
this
the
case
requires
eccentricity and
contrary,
heaven
It
of
Mount
is,however,
advances.
his
this
extraordinary
indifference
If
the
on
is
This
philosophic.
day terrible
for and
of
the
secret
he
wishes
of to
which
others
night; he
haste
the
to
melancholy the
alone
makes
accomplish
on
of
kingdom
be
denies
;
when
him himself his
ceptional. ex-
the
desire;
Phases
Various
154
the
brain
and
becomes
and
more
off
more
NATUEAL
THE
Malformation
and
In
the
In
number
of
the
on
lunatic
often
two
classes
body,
and
classes
by
of
that
them
up
rise
stndy
a
the
hopeless
head,
formed
other
but
moments, I
have
in
has
quantity
of
short, the
of
never
wavy
line
hand.
the
a
class.
such
known
of
line
In
life
on
any
of
this
recovery.
the
brought quality
to
case
result.
head,
in
and
Mars,
all
cross
formation
the
it
rare,
being
of
instead
running
this
denotes
extremely
are
is
branches
With
type
in
"
the
type
been
or
ever what-
hope
any
subject
idiot
hopeless
this
Such
red
any
the
that
of
gives
never
either
the
and
inside
side
opposite and
This
denotes
line
sloping
wide,
a
insufficient
of
made
is
than
sane
which,
type,
"
division
short
more
brain
a
find
hair-lines.
little
the
line,
generally
last
with
second
continuous
are
more
lunatic.
intelligence,
control
or
this
for
distinct
two
generally
we
and
or
world
the
Mars
class
reason
into
vicious
the
of
islands
of
govern
A
becomes
man
"
first
the
of
into
the
MADMAN.
responsible
is
brain
divided
be
can
that
entirely
the
of
hand,
the
idiot,
and
balance,
its
mad.
more
of
Insanity.
of
to
directions.
the
and
be
noted
with
other
nails
the
are
vicious
quarrelsome, will
a
that
regard
there
to
the
CHAPTER
V.
MODUS
the
In
subject,
first that
so
advise
that
of
is
because
merely
In
hands.
extremities
of
the
lines
the
directly opposite, the
the
type in
or
hands
then
occurred
X)n
all
so
forth,
this
or
that
~^'
Hold
mark
will
event
whatever
till the
the
blood
such
left
take
every The
speaking. whether
the
By to
the
basis
of
before
coming
th( sequently con-
subject hands
at
the
carefully
with
the
examine
palm,
the
left
have
changes
reading.
your
loss
illness, death,
day,
both
and
it
at
the
notice
modifications
hand
the
examine
carefully
next
and
that
stronger
of
keeping
consciously un-
successful
but
placing
first in
are
the
is
blood
as
subject
sunrise,
fatigue
examination,
class;
as
of
also
would
of to
fortune, the
marriage,
conclusion
that
place.
hand
you
are
flows
into
it
examining will
you
firmly
this
by
see
in
press
yours;
the
means
the
line
or
tendencies
of
growth. Examine
firm
position
promises
"
its
better
what
right
points,
what
see
the
the
fingers
both for
hour the
I
proximity,
necessary
distinct.
the
see
"
of
and
distinct
a
right
make
important
and
to
attention
of
after
the
to, whether
the
and
there,
a
with
proceeding
to
than
is in
close
his
opposite
hands.
in
the
circulation
colored
student
relate
turn
the
more
belong
themselves
hand,
^^^
In
time.
same
are
advocate
the
sit
or
the
himself
seat
on
absolutely
morning
early
to
directly
distract
they that
fact
the
the
in
India
student
stand
to
time
special
no
fall
will
person
the
may
allowed
be
third
There
reading
light
person
a
advise
would
good
a
no
palmist.
I
place,
OPERANDI.
or
palm
it
is
supple, :
note
of
portion
first
whether
it
whether
it
hand
should
point
long, short,
the
or
is is
poorly strong
hard,
^back, front, nails, skin,
"
be
examination
the
developed or
soft, 155
weak. or
of
whether
;
Then
flabby.
the
the turn
color
before "
thumb
will-phalange
your
attention
:
see
is to
I would
the
long
that
the
remark
you
short, thick
or
they represent,
type notice
Then
advise
next
whether
palm, to
nails
if
or
their
for
mounts
which
: see
mount
lines.
the
There
proceed
to
the
plan, however, is
best
then
proceed
line
the
to
be
they
is
fixed
to
start
of
head,
them class
hand,
the
the
the
line
lines of
finger.
attention
your
line
line
the
destiny,
; and
health
the
to
examine
to
of life and
health.
then first ;
combined,
of
heart, and
on.
but
need
you that
with a
read
take
be
If t;aisbe
the
contrary,
frier: dliness
it will
; if you
Above will
all
in
have a
the
highest
our
hands
sins
the
of the
things Let
before
be
us
in
earnest we
that
keys
of
fathers, the that
have
enemies,
not
in
a
of
examine If
we
see
or
your
;
for
sake
the
you.
you
thankful
for
you
entire
consults
distress
mysteries of the
the
shadow that
we
faults, let
of
find
of
on
their
of argument.
this
us
things
to
remember
let
more
light of
it
it
are
we
mancy cheiroyou
amusement,
but
and
hold
within
hereditary laws,
of the
cause,
of
worthy
one
aright, we
the
the
balance
be. used
work. us
learn
to
; you
difficult than an
research,
be
crown
crime,
it
effect
knowledge may
see
In
life.
knowledge
expect
study
we
past, the of
success
If
If
give.
of this
you
in the
not
"
can
if
must
if you
earnestly
karma
others.
neither
thought, patience
you the
day,
dismayed
it
humble
who
friends, be
argumentative
be sympathetic
hands
Let
tire
in handling
must
whose
person
never
meet
be
things, you
impatient in the pursuit
not
been,
would
you
careful
as
first, of self last.
careful,then,
work,
the criminal.
you
be
Consider
talents
work,
you.
not
entailing depth
it will
Be
natures.
the
to
plainest truths,
so.
person
their
benefit
some
your
work
Be
of
all
in every
feelings,and
If
language
a
imagined. work
meet
things, be
hour.
an
of
sustain
of your
learn
not
good,
to be
as
you
Above
machinery.
tell the
can
by doing
before
humanity
lives,their
foundation
Think
of
piece
their
to do
of
piece
consultant
your
deepest possible interest
the
into
; enter
hurt
or
delicate
fine and
ambition
the
shock
not
complicated
:
of
individual
disposition, and
the
to
as
the
to
whole, according
a
each
turn
Speak honestly, truthfully,yet carefully. You
as
proportion
greatest prominence
rule
with
as
temper,
on
have
no
"
entire
the
their
fingers
mixed,
bearing
mounts
or
the
thin ; class
or
Finally, after carefully examining
so
Operandi.
Modus
156
Let
consider are
aright. Let
not
us
the
us
examine
temptation
perfect.
be self of
IV.
PART
"
THE
APPARATUS
FOR
THOUGHT
PHOTOGRAPHY
than
more
and
in
atmosphere by
I made
When
an
opinion
and exist
through E.
force
be
at
could
rest
at
a
distance
those to
as
such
it at
on
a
in
was
distance
there
be
in
out
until
of and
use
beginnings at
last,
infancy then, who
few
practical
any
such
;
from
of
were
invent
a
for
about
an
in
two 158
five
years
of
it
;
the
but could
he
years ago,
he
of
wrote
had
needle
of
will
been metal
trating concen-
feet.
although
thought
savant, I
which
strong
did
force
a
before
a
on
Herder,
French
three
to
two
way
only
so
such
which
person
apparatus
nearly
that
apparatus
and
do
not
years
an
degrees, by
its
the
influenced
and
well-known
Sciences, Paris,
ten
days, yet
small
on,
of
in
ether
Abercrombie,
some
invented
des
did
as
the
that
knew
had
Academic
machine
think
labored
gentleman
the
little
perfected
who
and
this
the
with
proof
friend,
my
I
such
tangible
a
by
d'Odiardi.
attention
it in
made
of
I
ago,
years
scientists
time
variations
and
21).
some
that
at
Savary
moved
This
had
force, which
marks
in touch
alluded
have
unknown
an
medium
less
I
that
caused
the
or
more
of
noticed
be
body
through
was
writings
experiments
before
his
far
I
that
exhibited could
for
the
statement
the
will
generating
16, 19, and
pages
on
brain
also
being
this
based
others,
Monsieur this
(see
the
that
human
every
it
work
through
but
body,
another
one
of
radiations
its
the
idea
the
this
of
pages
to
once
only by
not
on
earlier
the
REGISTER
FORCE.'
CEREBRAL
In
AND
scientists
would brain
not
be
the
so
man
satisfied
jDatiently triumphed
be
ever
of
veled mar-
to
worked
over
all
and
Thought Pliotography constructed
obstacles,and machine
he
thought
in
had the
diUerent
in
register360
attention
his
various
he
to
has
and
been
certain
make
the
person
only being able From
first
action
to
of ten
move
time
that
registeringneedle
he
on
with
to
of diseases
cure
fined con-
people
of
he act
has as
this
on
been
the
a
observation
the
"
effect
cases,"
of
guide
in
watching
the
indications
June,
18
96, I had
the
honor
of
result
The
singular apparatus.
able, by
incurable
reputed
ample opportunitiesof watching diseases
that
rules
the
hospitalfor
had
temperaments
of his work
every
of
of the
159
of temperament. idiosyncrasies
In his electro -medical
by ordinary means,^
with
movement.
one
observations
to
and
emotions
showed
which, instead
brain, and
degrees,could
and
invented,
Force.
completely eclipsed the
which
apparatus
an
Cerebral
Register
this
of
instrument. On
Professor ;
and,
the
it
upward
or
in ''
who
may
the
sake
of
hundreds
this
in
by
approached
it under
the
brain.
This
is also
paralyzed,yet will
addicted
neuro-muscular
to
The
of
with sorts
him
in
in
ratus appa-
and
ditions con-
the
use
of
tion. field of observa-
and
experiments
day
assisting this
all
Street,and
a
in my
hands,
since
have
then
with
connection
act
the
as
long
Nottiagliill
influence
habit
of
of certain
the
He
having the
in his
has
the
force
a
experiments that
though
entire needle
demonstrated
also
drugs
to
action
Street, London,
of W.
the
known
SDinal
with
injure
the the
uninjured
recourse
reflex
Hospital, 30 Silver
is
by
drugs
fact that
brain
the
before.
as
Gate
Professor
the
as
is influenced
machine
proved by
agents,"depressersof '
with
of
me.
needle
the
of
scope
in Bond
rooms
my
is shown
be
collaborate
to
me
brain
the
instrument
subjects
obtaining charts
from
made to
in connection
might enlarge his
he
visited
that
proof
stupefythe
body
experiments
thirty to forty times
of
who
radiatingfrom people
notes
instrument
people
The
that
in order
placing
brought
various
the
for finally,
machine,
tested
various
with
people,he requested
After I
in
London,
to
d'Odiardi
of
this
return
my
that as
cord,
Language
Cheird's
160
such
chloral, chloroform, bromide
as
produce (by looking
the
at
registeringneedle
in the
of
absence
out
that
the
ingestion and
also
that
with
the
of
transmission
the
form
it is
Not of
effect
an
; i. e.^
by
Thus
of food.
or
;
impaired by
intoxication
of drink
bral cere-
point
to
is such
only
to
drugs
of such
use
intensityof
kind
apt
of them
succession
a
the
by
agents. any
and
effect of drunkenness
stupefying
by
in the
stimulants, whether
of
excess
of those
drugs, but
or
less
the
by thought-force seeming
and
thought
assimilation
toxic
produced by
produced
of
production
the
is interfered
radiation
the
the
deflection
a
demonstrating
; thus
Hand.
potassium, etc., are
of
instrument)
radiation
external
by
force
the
of
an
is the
voracityscientifically proved by
this
registeringapparatus. The is
caused
by the
(during
of
a
needle with a
in
the
is to
the
fact
of
shares. holder moment
to
twenty
myself,
the
of
that
No of
one
many the
and fall knew
in
thousands
drop
in
the
of value
the
endowed
person deflections
from
been
time
quoted by in the stood
gentleman
a
the
same
of
South
gentleman pounds was
made
Machine
conversation
value the
deflect
to
a
ity vicin-
is raised.
needle
at
even
time
"
one
worth
mentioned
of
at
these the
the
"
of
find
other
it the
some
persons
mentioned
the
Company's
machine
shares
man's
Answers
World";
Chartered
African
looking
them
by
in front
several of
time
to
endeavoring, if possible,to
and
casual
that
has
Wonderful
About
the
the
likes dis-
he
person
/ if in the
and
movements
that
one
occasion
action
in
a
power
from
needle
feet.
Most
power.
no
single look
a
is
one
upon
its
room,
sudden
a
there
by
has
interestingexperiments
its criticising
explanation entered
a
entitled,"The
effect
instrument
two
idiot
an
vicinityof
denoted
the
over
jealousy, hatred
envy,
lose standard
to
variety of
cause
many
and
article
an
that
subject
a
by
in the
standard
apparatus, whereas
of from
inventor
the
demonstrated
brain-power may
Among
loves
or
tested
instrument
the
by
likes
also
the
distance
the
he
has in
subject being
is shown
person
He
A
fit).
in
power
(afterthe fit),and
violence
anger,
hates
or
of deflective
diminution
same
; but
mental
was
at
the the
emotion
o
U.
caused the
indicator
the
Another whether this
half
least
greater the
by
will
be
less
one
who
found
loves
machine.
than
the
instrument,
lost
degree,according to
the
most
will
person
"who
produced
been
has
effect that
of
out
registeringneedle,
the
over
power
the
while
; in
together for
the
loves
who
one
made
left
are
other
the
charts
they
determine
can
one
more
After
the
on
have
to
which
separately,and
again tested,and
are
person'spresence.
hundreds
this
with
the
by
that
of
registerone
it.
by in
is
tested
greater influence
a
or
other
But
of
have
to
the
loves
they
is
are
rapidly,and
move
recorded
been
there
persons shown
hour
an
a
two
to
experiment people
two
movements
be found
in
of
the
case
their
curious
out
has
that
highest numbers
machine
the
in
161
Force.
Cerehral
Hegister
TJiouglitPliotograpliyand
of
wonderful
Vanity Fair^
invention, w^hich December
interestingmachine
be
cited
summed
up
interesting experiments might have
been
17, 1896, in which
really seems
he the
bridge
to
in connection
by
"This
says:
curiously
between
gulf
editor
the
and
mind
matter." The hundreds in
a
accompanying
illustrations
of charts
that
have
strikingway,
what
very of
persons
widely
who Phillips, African
South the
has
Kev.
a
different
played
made
from
difference
such
an
2
Wakefield.
this
random
at
instiument in
No.
the
1
is that
of
These
a
well-known
and
of
they show, of
Mr.
connection
London
good examples
are
;
is that
two
Lionel with
clergyman,
of what
different
the
from
radiations
important part recentlyin
entirelydistinct strong personalities,
call two
almost
exists
temperaments.
No.
affairs.
Russell
been
taken
are
in
one
would
magnetism,
will-power,etc. One is
of
tested
appendix). stands is clear
at
a
extraordinary conditions
most
whatever
contact fliy^ical
no
end
of the
distance
within and of from
In a
the
regular
foot to
dry, a ten
required{^qq
person to
feet
two
of
twenty
a
Pall
of
course
of
of the
the
Mcdl
instrument
is that
article Gazette.^
experiments
strong will may
feet.
machine
the
; but
influence
there at
the
person
to
if the
phere atmos-
the
be
needle
C heir el's
162
There
are
with
nication
the
body, of
in
have
off
before
end
by
the
of
the
of
influence
mind
In the
yet the name
then, the
realize?
from
action
of
the
needle
by but
body,
machine other
any
and
one
due
was
denser con-
themselves
this
moved
the
the
for in
was
through
upon
this
netism, mag-
to
all force
a
in
if the
the
affect
not
we
would
convince the
affect
thoughts
our
days
few
a
beino^ tested
importantly
more
of
England,
machine
only
not
but
radiation
must
so
machine
a
of
seeinsr the
after
matter,
over
Church
the
in
a
one
of
influence
of
this
needle and
thoughts, ideas,
of lives
us." may
then
its
continual
We
in. his
prisoner and
the
legend,
soul,
as
its if
a
the
not
in
that
write
For
:
more
nerves.
prison-house
Such
"
; for
power
should
divines
written,
was
conclusion,
very
needle
radiating the
tested
force,
brain
plays
unbelievers
greatest the
the
commu-
tested.
mind
of
around
peripheral force
that
said
much
how
those
admitted
leading
mind
over
metal,
force
person
ways,
h^ve
it odic
from
atmosphere,
electric
or
be
"
radiates
the
that
prove
unknown
article
that
The
to
agent
People
machine.
way
operator,
unknown
throiiQrh
manner.
Hand.
^he
by
subtle
more
passing
every
this
this
variety
his
sensitive
in
One
of
this
the
in
given
the
that,
but
agency
still
and
tried
the
needle, except
conceivable
every
have
the
something
or
employed
magnets
no
of, the
Language
deeds
of
the
dungeon to
be
captive
action
not, and
know
past
or
not,
the
body,
past trials,its future there
be
a
soul, then
things, its past joys, its present
sorrows,
the
is
dreams
the
the
case
deeds
the
a
be
through
the
this
around be.
him
May
it will
not,
be
of
it what
its
day
some
spirit,conscious "
And
fleshly walls
that
future
unseen
future.
stones
may the
on
it,being and
the
needle
why the
of
on
write
hopes,
hand
know,
write as
this
moves
the
never
or
often
that
marks
may
will
read in
force
very
of it
all
may.
Cheieo.
THE
HAND
OF
Plate
A
XXV.
SUICIDE.
A
HAND.
BABY'S
Plate
XXVI.
THE
HAND
OF
MADAME
Plate
SARAH
XXVH.
BERNHARDT
THE
HAND
OF
Plate
MARK
XXVHI.
TWAIN.
THE
HAND
OF
MADAME
Plate
XXIX.
NORDICA.
THE
HAND
(the
OF painter
THEO
JOHN of
the
Plate
"living
XXX.
DORfi
BENTLEY.
CHRIST".)
THE
HAND
OF
COLONEL
Plate
ROBERT
XXXL
INGERSOLL.
THE
OF
HAND
Plate
W.
XXXni.
T.
STEAD.
THE
HAND
OF
THE
RIGHT
HON.
Plate
XXXIV
JOSEPH
CHAMBERLAIN,
M.
P.
THE
HAND
OF
(Illustrativeof hereditary
CHAMBERLAIN,
AUSTEN tendencies,
Plate
see
XXXV
hand
ESQ., of his father,
M.
Plate
P.
XXXIV
THE
HAND
OF
MRS.
Plate
ANNIE
XXXVI.
BESANT.
THE
HAND
OF
THE
LORD LORD
RUSSELL
Plate
CHIEF OF
XXXVII.
JUSTICE KILLOWEN.
OF
ENGLAND.
THE
HAND
OF
THE
Plate
COUNTESS
XXXVni.
OF
ABERDEEN.
THE
HAND
OF
SIR
JOHN Plate
LUBBOCK,
XXXIX.
M.
P., F. R.
S.
THE
HAND
OF
SIR
FREDERICK
Plate
LEIGHTON,
XLI.
P.
R.
A.
THE
HAND
OF
SWAMI
Plate
VIVEKANANDA.
XLH.
THE
HAND
OF
Plate
E.
M.
XLHI.
CURTISS,
ESQ.
THE
HAND
OF
THE
REV.
Plate
C.
XLIV.
H.
PARKHURST,
D.
D.
THE
LEFT
HAND
OF
Plate
XLV.
LADY
LINDSAY.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
OF
Plate
SIR
ARTHUR
XLVI.
SULLIVAN.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
OF
Plate
LADY
XLVn.
HENRY
SOMERSET.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
OF
Plate
XLIX.
MADAME
MELBA.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
OF
CHARLES
LORD
Plate
L.
BERESFORD.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
("THE
OF
MR.
WILLIAM
PROVIDER,"
VNIVERSAL
Plate
LI.
WHITELEY.
LONDON.)
THE
RIGHT
HAND
OF
GEN.
SIR
Plate
REDVERS
LII.
BULLER,
V.
C,
K.
C.
B.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
OF
REV.
Plate
LHI.
MINOT
J. SAVAGE.
THE
RIGHT
HAND
(TRESIDKNT
OF world's
Plate
H.
N.
COLUMBIAN
LIV.
HIGINBOTHAM
EXPOSITION.)
ESQ.
THE
HAND
OF
THE
(Right
RIGHT
Hand,
W.
HON. full
life
E.
GLADSTONE.
Ei7.o.)
"i-M
APPENDIX.
OPINIONS
THE
OF
A
EXTRACTS
FEW
regard
has
told
certain
to
and
past
my
coming
Duke
immediate
which
events
of
he
Indeed,
Cheiro,
the
of
mystery
the
Sir
I
have
been
struck
much
future
by
has
recalled
my
is the
with
not
the
invisible.
power.
Marryat. hand
I
than
accurately
more
could
from
done
have
myself.
memory
Lieutenant-Colonel
Cheiro
is
really
Ponsonby.
marvelous. Florence
Cheiro far
especially
accuracy, known.
Wolf.
extraordinary
my
have
visible,
Drummond
Henry
from
past
wonderful
possibly
not
Florence
Cheiro
v.'ith
Wilde.
world
Cheiro's
AUTOGRAPH-BOOK.
Newcastle.
could
Oscar
PUBLIC.
AND
CHEIRO'S
PROM
The
Cheiro
PRESS
as
I
was
myself
can
remarkable
very
see)
the
in
Fenwick
his
am
more
than
of
probabilities
astonished
;
life.
my
subject
is
has
mapped
certainly
out
the
desei'ving
has
inspired
me
with
rooms
are
and
surroundings,
crowded "
and
no
(as
wonder.
marvelous.
most
calm
T.
M.D.
Cooper,
characteristics and
scientific
Melton
Cheiro
His
my
"
leading of
character,
my
Roosevelt.
marvelous
Robt.
Cheiro
of
knowledge
Blanche
I
Miller.
veneration
for
of
my
past
life with
great
study.
Prior.
palmistry
to
an
appalling
extent.
accuracy.
The
Appendix.
Cheiro
regard
with
told
only
not to
the
me
my
marvelous
Cheiro
things
proved
tell,been
life,but
my
also
likely predictions
most
future. Fuller
Loie
The
of
incidents
leading
A.K.C.
Blake,
Everard
Rev.
be
to
read
absolutely
have,
in 1890
palm
in my
to
more
surprise than
my
I
cai:
true.
"Rita."
astonished
has
Cheiro
description
his accurate
with
me
life during his reading of
of my
mv
hand. John
told
Cheiro
Your
life from
past
my
is
palm-reading
Mrs.
Frank
it
helps
well
as
is
that
exposed
this accuracy,
still I
moved
EXTRACTS
is
wonder.
a
back
traced career, true
what
bent
to
My to
their
be.
The
having thoroughly me
lose
some
of
money,
for if Cheiro
the when can
had
with
Wilcox.
Melba.
Twain.
first exact
convinced
August
Home," hand
my
people
was
to
cold be
read
the
of his claims
and
mai-ry,
past,
my
health
my
dark, mysterious future. I shall
as
he
told
character,
I
me
I ought not
accuracy.
to
confess
when
my
upon
I know I shall
undoubtedly
I alone
never
ambition
My in
bent, and my
and
in what attain can,
I shall
success.
why
should
At
;
and
he
die, in what
least not
solutely ab-
I feel read
as
the
and
choosing
eventually then
intelligence,proceeded
and year
in
hesitation
given
so
analyzed
were
I should was
never
given swiftly and
it,was
life,my
past
minutely,
emotions
what
in the time
so
know
can
described.
true now
4.
before, but as
were
PRESS.
AMERICAN
and
imagined of
humiliating
AND
of my
state
with
me
ENGLISH
various
beginnings. at
perfect
or
discretion.
it.
Hearth
detail
relations
I had
do
to
I have
correctly. Every unerringly.
to
FROM
"
Cheiro
less of
and
trust
I say.
can
more
character
my
am
by
mysterious skill
this
of
astonishes.
as
iconderful, what
has
possession
your
Wheeler
Mark
Cheiro
aceui-acy.
Leslie.
Madame
Cheiro
absolute
most
accompanied
Ella
Cheiro
the
with
startlinglytrue
so
inspire fear, were
well
faculty might
my
Winter.
Strange
hand
year
find
Cheu-o, to
read
I shall
if I knew future
a
my
?
it,
past is
The the Men
book
open
is clear
present
to
as
of
his
while
all
grades
Cheiro's
mission
is the
and
a
successfully, far
as
the
lines
as
of
on
the
which
hundreds
lines
he
science
Cheiro
had
did
correctly
upon
a
my
even
a
has
line
every
Cheiro's
read
in this
the
submitted
things
I had
without where
you
is
a
visit
A
there
any
of
name
Cheiro
to
your
past
your
of
appreciative
to
names
time), life-
hesitancy.
been
but
his
inner
life
is
fraught
thoughts
and
quiLtly narrated, in
mystery each
all
and
one
The
and
his
a
he ;
by
palmist
from
tell
what
to
and
is not
reads
the
you
and
hand what
why.
i^eason
of the
women
so
tune-teller for-
a
your
explains exactly
gives
men
me
minutely,
so
He
simply He
intuition
the
day.
during
past, the
strikes
the
all
present,
the
nor
tains main-
season,
those
who
have
future
of
the
him.
to
13.
and
a
"
able
before.
extensively visited
for
it
a
explained
days
scientific
it is
candidly
the
future
carefully explains
theory concerning
few either
as
interest, for
calmly
we
29.
October
predictions
Cheiro
this, as
from
so
much
with character
past he
my
marvelous
Lady,"
hand
is indicated
as
been
one
any
another,
crosses
mysteries
brain
success
compliments.
any
Neither
veiled
of his
has
pose
October
has
of the
hand
reporter's it is the
from;
10.
not
or
Morning
reads
ours.
with
you
The
he
development
never
testimonials
Society,"
with
one
doing only
does
it ends
be
but
of
salon
to
seem
he
examination.
his
to
dealt
of
connected
science,
whose
palmist,
cheiromancy themselves
have
their
his
during
particle
no
6.
September
paying
is filled with
"
to
afl"xed
is the
England
thought least
at
"
manner,
perfect strangers
most
hands
of
with
acknowledgment
time,
a
many
"
that
have
Any
of
Pelican,"
little detail
autograph-book
Cheiro
He
right
The
Every
shows
means,
hand.
the
letters
The
thought-reader
straight-forward
July
concerned.
fame
to
hands
certain
or
in
is unraveled
future
profession
of
thousands
some
Morning," of
are
He
known
yesterday. ;
has
the
basis.
it
traces.
people
The
scientific
"
I have
read
achievements. "
make
(he
noon,
letters, scientists,and
of
notices
an
13-
August
"Life," Cheiro
theory
decidedly
a
novel
forth, all the
set
experience
chief
confidently pronounced.
eveiy
which
line
he
as
certainly
of
events
Nor
proceeds, giving works
out
with
is the
ling start-
exactness. "
How
far
say,
but
that
had
changed
however at
his
palmists Cheiro in the
anxious
microscopic
be
may
read last
to
that few
decry
permitted the
years
the
dehneation,
whole
by
it is idle
slow,
a
Power
higher
conditions
palmist's art, in
19.
October
Woman,"
to
deny
can
let
well-chosen
that ;
but
Cheiro
words,
to must
read
the
necessarily
setting past read
future
their
of one's
and hands
is not
for
affect
my
future
future
aside,
without
disposition,
one's
no
me
to
life one,
marveling inner
self.
Appendix. He
tells
aspirations which
and
ambitions,
points, points
of weak
one
clever there
in
belief
Palmist, is truth
and
Palmistry
in
your
asking the
paper
question
a
life and
or
the
article
"The
It would
by
sorcerers,
whose to
hands
who
showed
we
the
people
Cheiromancy,
Cheiro
has
wonderfvil
of
The
Recorder,"
New
also
of the
Sunday
; there
is
Cheiro
London,
Cheiro
is
the
London,
is
which
the
people,
impressions
out with-
and
of hands
on
accuracy.
he
of
read
the
the
him
giving
old
Egyptian
lives
the
of
people
slightestclue
as
Advertiser,"
New
York,
absorbed
power,
that
he
2.
science.
exact
an
destiny
the
each
October
the
possesses
The
hand
contains
epitome
an
man.
unusual
from
29.
and
sources
faculty
in
blood
of many
Brahmans
and
the
for
converted
days
a
four
the
New
York,
knowledge human
reading
of
acquired nature
to
a
greatest
hands
and
up
skeptics
to
and
everybody is
belief
a
male
witch
history
makes
in
anybody,
was
19,000.
palmistry
is
who
have
would
strange
as
up "
at
in
New
least
as
He
fession. pro-
lived
Street,
Bond
in his
been
his
cosmopoUtan.
him
of '92 turned
summer
who
18.
Cheiro's
in his veins in the
of
date
to
magician,
Mather.
flows
12.
February
a
necromancer,
years,
the
read
hand-reading
of Cotton
nations
November
York,
and
of his
Press,"
wizard,
stake
New
rage,
aggregate
method
of
it. "
Cheiro years
stranger.
a
descendant
a
were
October
York,
awaits
World,"
was
The
veritable
a
at the
The
domg
that
17.
without
which
doubt
no
"The
among
believe
26, 1893.)
with
paper,
well-known,
to
degree.
including royalty.
burned
November
ease
on
of
any
wonderful
December
uncanny
inclined
from
read
most
palmists, Cheiro,
of
almost
impressions
"The
In
World,
Journal,"
him
extraordinary
peculiar \rays
York
visit to that
a
be
life of
Cheiro the
ourselves.
World."
positions in
with
cherisli ; of fancies,
to
accurately by
so
York
bush,
by
must
one
read
"New
the
practised by Cheiro,
as
record, and "
in
be
can
but
one
confirmed
be,
those
as
were.
"
of the life's
and
25.
been
person
New
prince
remarkable
February
may
the
or
about
Morning
if this
as
seem
the
the
of each
characteristics
(See
by
names
beating
any
past
tested
either
knowing
every
you
life
well
from
of it has
skeptical
when
Palmistry
truth
the
Cheiro
Without
Review,"
However
Cheiro.
hidden
thought
we
"Whitehall
My
guard against, as
to
of age,
has and
studied
the
last year
Current
hand his
rooms
Literature," from
a
in
purely New
Bond
February scientific
1.
standpoint.
Street,London,
were
He
is
just twenty-six
filled with
the
most
Appendix. fashionable has
written
one
entertained
was
books
valuable
two
or
Eoosevelt's
in Blanche
described,
he
and
people,
indications
mere
and
when, be
why
character,
to
people
goes
failure
prevent
alone
you
as
the
influences
his
tour
they
India, the
where
anxious
and
has
he
is
ancient
many
He
if in any.
of
of
or
and
time
his
Cheiro
can
The
a
his
him
to
take
existent the
childhood
shapes
and
fate
lines
of the
has
Cheiro
by
is
chief
led
experience and
the
His
known. in
His but
Cheiro occult find
knowledge
in his
aid
the
he
of
; he
germ
every
relations
with
the
many
nearly
read
in
is to have
and
Indian
nine
time
extended
an
Maharaja,
a
of
potentates
thousand
palms, and
savants,
are
both
for
men
unchecked
with
of
self, him-
impending
often
considerable
because accuracy
life.
close
the
him
warn
can
tendency,
distinguish
can
person
he
foretell
even
12th.
May
knowledge
whose
student to
a
nature; evil
an
Post,"
Boston
5th.
May
in which
can
of the
of
study
Journal,"
Boston
makes
furthermore that
it
is
The
of
one
great learning, the his
bare
of hands
human
is
nature
inborn, since as
revealed
from in
the
be
can
no
of
mystery
for the
used
7th.
April
help
and
his
science.
advancement
He of
has
proved
the
human
mentally.
Palmist,
makes
lays
your
for
guest of
the
inner
form
events
him
"
Cheiro,
must
force
hand.
scientist, and
morally
both
race,
a
life and
describe
royalty, statesmen,
fields
or
whole
the
in
"The
his
moral he
unerringly
remain
to
which
Herald,"
field
solid, sensible,earnest
a
is to be
from
Boston
the
error
these
disease
what
upon
where,
showing
10th.
May
London
in
season
fall back
or
world.
reveal
circumstance
is
He
be
best
can
"
matter,
and
you,
even
proposes
Cheiromancy,
on
"The
earliest
but
He
city.
life.
Weekly,"
world,
of the
and
can
your
him.
in the
dangers, especially when unknown
on
awaiting
tell without
can
had
the
"
Cheiro
have
before
He
generalize
not
heart
Swiftly
it.
letters of commendation
prominent
women
know
works
During
revive.
to
which
around
welcome
a
certain
of
use
on
can
Leslie's
"Frank
is
Cheiro
future.
altogether marvelous!
most
does
very
lie possibilities
in the
of the
31st.
He
straight to the
failed, what
have
you
and
but
March
logical.
leaders
subject, and
marvelous,
as
Week,"
a
clear, and
social
the
by
favorite "
words,
own
minute,
character
of your
other
of
to bear
brought
detail
is
reading
his
on
"Once
Cheiro's
everywhere
counsel
of
is vast most
and
remarkable
most
thoughtful,
value, and
the
raises
genuine, and
potent stimulus.
June
Budget."
Boston
the
3d.
scientists
philosophic his the
work true
to
power, a
seeker
that the
the charm
scholarly after
the
and
world of
has
personality
scientific
higher
ever
basis.
life cannot
Apjpendix.
"The
Palmistry
was
a
New
"
before
lecture
Cheiro's
York
The
Hall
Chickering IS
Cheiro
by
the
on
Avhich
first minds the
utilityin
the
hereditaiy
scientific
most
a
with
made
and
engaging
unstinted
on
with
the
Thureday the
Palmist,
called
of several
forth his
and
fashionable
explanations last.
He
was
his
was
audience
opticon hot and
Views
weather, at
the
a
of hands the
close
and
in life, in its and
of life that of
ground
the
to
held
reasons
of character
philosophy
its
last,and
went
thoroughly
handsome
and
proper
been
scientific
practical uses
is young
Cheiro,
lecture it has
revelation
the
on
audience
large of the
most
in feature. at
the
end
was
of famous hall
was
lecture
a
the
at
people,
was
that
their
at
Chickering
Hall
standpoint, together
interest.
rare
4th.
his
on
science
evening. of
master
the
art
attention
The of
speaker
laying
and
before
his
interest
was
a
large
not
only
facts
and
kept
to
close.
in the
16th.
June
entertaining
filled to the
Cheiro
way
of
lecture
Monday
on
scientific
a
June
remarkable
Herald,"
and
from
Lynn,
20th.
assemblage
early life,proved
thorough
a
Boston
instructive
fashionable
Palmistry
Hall
such
in
heartily applauded
delivered
a
gave
also
and
Item,"
Fellows'
"The
Cheiro
on
of his
Evening
at Odd
subject, but
before
lecture
Palmist,
audience
his
understood
the
celebrated
the
large
a
incidents
"The
Cheiro,
the
Gazette," April
Evening
Saturday
when
afternoon,
relation
his
to its
hear
to
his
applause.
"Boston
Cheiro,
held
He
lecturer.
it
Cheiro
superior humanity-
its
medical
oriental
for
In
repute in which
for
as
the
plea
eloquent
an
audience
science.
pointed
well
as
his
of the
expounded
also
lecturer
The
science, and
the
also
He
disease,
that
events.
to the
some
showed
19th.
of
and
He
interesting.
distinguished
a
interests
in detail
rested. and
of health
knowledge
with
the
to
April
Palmistry,
gave
of Cheiromancy
character
makes
greeted
truth
He
antiquity.
of
Herald,"
in
of
great antiquity
tendencies.
with
along
He
to the
pointed
extremely
was
yesterday world
of the
tour
a
25th.
February
character,but
to
Boston
crowded
was
making
now
Club"
only
LECTURES.
Herald,"
Lotus
reliable guide not
"The
who
OE
NOTICES
PRESS
lecture
Association
doors
greeted
on
Hall
with
fashionable
with
enthusiastic
his art, illustrated last and
night.
In
by Stere-
spite of
the
distinguished people,
applause.
View more...
Comments